SEGAL, Alan. Two Powers in Heaven Early Rabbinic Reports About Christianity and Gnosticism (Studies in Judaism in Late Antiquity ,-1-331
SEGAL, Alan. Two Powers in Heaven Early Rabbinic Reports About Christianity and Gnosticism (Studies in Judaism in Late Antiquity ,-1-331
IN LATE ANTIQUITY
EDITED BY
JACOB NEUSNER
ALAN F. SEGAL
LEIDEN
E. J. BRILL
1977
TWO POWERS IN HEAVEN
EARLY RABBINIC REPORTS
ABOUT CHRISTIANITY AND GNOSTICISM
BY
ALAN F. SEGAL
TABLE OF CONTENTS
Preface ix
List of Abbreviations • . • xv
Transliterations xxvi
PART ONE
INTRODUCTION
I. Two Powers in Heaven; The History and Importance of
the Problem 3
PART TWO
PART THREE
Bibliography
Indices
I. Rabbinic Writings
II Extra-Rabbinic Writings
III. Scriptural References . . . .
IV. Subjects
PREFACE
economy arose earlier than the heresy with an opposing one. This
evidence gives limited and disinterested support to the church fathers'
contention that gnosticism arose later than Christianity. But it further
implies that both Christianity and gnosticism arose out of Hellenistic
and apocalyptic Judaism by sharing heretical traditions of scripture
interpretation which speculated on a principal angelic mediator of God.
Äs I said, the inquiry has had ramifications quite far removed from
the rabbinic material. I am not so naive to think that my conclusions
about christology or the rise of gnosticism can be accepted without
comment by people more specialized in these fields. Nor was that
my desire. Rather, I only outlined enough of these specialized fields
to date the rabbinic material and to suggest the relationship of the
rabbinic texts to Christian history. Hopefully, I learned enough of the
characteristics of these disparate bodies of text to stimulate constructive
rather than destructive criticism. I realize that no single individual
or body of material can fully explain this most complex and difficult
period of history. The important thing, I think, is to perceive the
relevance of the rabbinic material for solving traditional problems of
New Testament and gnostic scholarship, even while maintaining the
necessity of reading those literatures for dating rabbinic material.
That rabbinic and Christian communities interacted antagonistically is
an obvious and unfortunate part of centuries of Western history. This
study has shown me that, ironically, in spite of the enmity, the witness
of each community is necessary for understanding the history of the
other.
Since this book started as a dissertation I have had the advantage
of much significant advice. Anyone familiar with the study of Hellen-
istic Judaism or New Testament scholarship will recognize the debt
Ï owe to Professor N. A. Dahl. I have cited his works when specifically
relevant but his insight and knowledge extend far beyond explicit
citation. His direction and encouragement underlie the whole. I also
owe a debt of gratitude to many scholars who served as my advisers.
Professor Judah Goldin, who served as co-director of the dissertation
while he remained at Yale, was a considerable help. Professor Sid
Leiman was a constant adviser throughout the research and writing.
He was especially generous with his time and patience in commenting
on the rabbinic evidence. I have also received much helpful direction
from my colleagues and teachers at Princeton and Yale. Wayne Meeks
and Rowan Greer read the manuscript when submitted for the degree
in December 1975. I have tried to profit from their comments in
PREFACE XIII
Hbr. De Ebrietate
He. Ecclesiastes
Eduy. Eduyoth
*7 Encyclopedia Judaica
Hl bogen ïsmar Elbogen, Der jüdische Gottesdienst in seiner ge-
schichtlichen Entwicklung (Hildesheim: 1962)
Ep. Arist. Epistle of Aristeas
Eph. Ephesians
i -.pi.
p
Epiphanius
Epstein, tr. The Babylonian Talmud, tr, I Epstein (London: Soncino,
1961).
Epstein, MBW^WT J. N . Epstein, MBWnVT LÏPRWT HTWYM. (Jeru-
salem: 1957)
Eranos Eranos Jahrbuch
E.R.E. Encyclopedia of Religion and Ethics
I: rub. Erubin
Est. Esther
Eus. Eusebius
Evan g. Quart. Evangelical Quarterly
Ex. Exodus
Ezek. Ezekiel
Ezra Ezra
Festugière R. P. Festugière, La Revelation d'Hermes Trismégiste
(Paris: 19-19-54) in four volumes
Finkelstein Sifre on Deuteronomy, ed., L. Finkelstein (New York:
1969)
Fischei IL Fische!, Rabbinic Literature and Greco-Roman Philo-
sophy: A Study of Epicurea and Rhetorica in Early
Midrashic Writings (Leiden: 1973)
F lace. In Flaccum
Fossum Jari Fossurn, Dissertation, Utrecht
Freedman, tr. Midrash Rabbah, ed. and tr. H. Freedman and K, Simon
(London: Sociano, 1961)
Friedländer, Gnosticismus M". Friedländer, Die vorchristliche jüdische Gnosticismus
(Göttingen: 3 898)
Fug. De Fuga et Inventione
Gal. Gal ati ans
Gen. Genesis
Gen. Apoc. Genesis Apocryphon
Gig. De Gigantibus
Ginzberg, Legends Louis Ginzberg, The Legends of the Jews, trans. Hen-
rietta Szold (Philadelphia: 1968)
Gitt. Gittin
Golclin, Song J. Goldin, The Song at the Sea: Being a Commentary on
a Coinmentary in Two Parts (New Haven: 1971)
Goodenough, Jewish E. R. Goodenough, Jewish Symbols in the Greco-Roman
Symbols Period (New York: 1942)
Graetz, Gnosticismus H. Graetz, Gnosticismus und Judentum (Krotoschtn:
1946)
Green A. Green, "The Children in Egypt and the Theophany at
the Sea: Interpretation of an Aggadic Motif/' un-
published paper
Gruenwald, Apocalyptic I. Gruenwald, Apocalyptic and Merkabah Mysticism: A
XVIII LIST OF ABBREVIATIONS
und Merkabah Mysticism Study of the Jewish Esoteric Literature in the time of
the Mishnah and Talmud. Unpublished dissertation
(Jerusalem: Hebrew University, 1968/9) revised edition
forthcoming from Leiden: Brill, 1978.
Gruenwald, Visions of I. Gruenwald, ed., "The Visions of Ezekiel" Temirin:
Ezekiel Texts and Studies in Kabbalah and Hasidism, ed., I.
Weinstein (Jerusalem: 1972)
Günther, St. Paul's J. J. Günther, St. Paul's Opponents and their Background
Opponents (Leiden: 1973)
H.A. Hypostasis of the Archons
Hab. Habakkuk
Hag. Hagigah
Harnack A. von Harnack, Marcion: das Evangelium com fremden
Gott: eine Monographie zur Geschichte der Grundle-
gung der katholischen Kirche (Darmstadt: I960)
Hall. Hallah
Heb. Hebrews
Hengel, Son of God Martin Henkel, The Son of God, tr. J. Bowden (Phila-
delphia: Abingdon, 1976).
Herford R. Travers Herford, Christianity in Talmud and Midrash
(London: 1903)
Hip. Hippolytus
Hist. Jud. H'tstoria Judaica
Holscher, Anfängliches U. Holscher, Anfängliches Tragen: Studien zur frühen
Prägen griechischen Philosophie (Göttinnen: 1968)
Hör. Horayoth
Hos. Hosea
H-R H. S, Horowitz & A. Rabin, Mekhilta d Rabbi Ismael
(Frankfort: 1931)
HR History of Religions
HSS Harvard Semitic Studies
HTR Harvard Theological Review
HUCA Hebrew Union College Annual
Hull. Huliin
Hyp. Hypothetica
ICC International Critical Commentary
IEJ Israel Exploration Journal
Is, Isaiah
JAOS Journal of the American Oriental Society
Jas. James
Jastrow M. Jastrow, Dictionary of the Targumim, the Talmud
Babli & Yerushalmi and the Midrashic Literature (New
York: 1926)
JBL Journal of Biblical Literature
JE Jewish Encyclopedia
Jer. Jeremiah
Jg. Judges
JJGL Jahrbuch für jüdische Geschichte und Literatur
JJS Journal of Jewish Studies
H Joel
Jn. John
1 Jn. 1 John
2 Jn. 2 John
LIST OF ABBREVIATIONS XIX
3 Jn. 3 John
JNES journal of Near Eastern Studies
Job Job
Joe!, Blicke M. Joel, Blicke in die Reit'gionsgeschickte zu Anfang des
zweiten christlichen Jahrhunderts (Breslau: 1880)
Jon. Jonah
Jos. De Josepho
Josh. Joshua
/PS Jewish Publication Society of America
/K Journal of Religion
fSJ journal for the Study of Judaism
Jub. Jubilees
Jude Jude
Kasher M. M. Kasher, Torah Shelemah, 23 vols, (New York:
57Ö9 f.)
Kei. Kelim
Ker. Kerithoth
Ker. Pet. The Preaching of Peter
Ket. Ketuboth
1 Kg. L Kings
2 Kg. 2 Kings
Kidd. Kiddushin
Kil. Kilaim
Kinn. Kinnim
Koehler-Baumgartner L. Koehler & W. Baumgartner, Lexicon in Veteris Testa-
ment'! Libros (Leiden: 1948)
Krauss S. Krauss, Griechische und Lateinische Lehnwörter in
Talmud. Midrash & Targum (Berlin: 1898-9)
I.am. Lamentations
Lauterbach J. 2. Lauterbach, Mekilta de-Rabb't Ishmael (Philadelphia:
1949)
Lauterbach, Clarifications J. Lauterbach, "Some Clarifications on the Mekhilta,"
Sefer Klausner; A Collection of Science and Belles-
Lettres gathered for Prof, Y. Klausner on his Sixtieth
jubilee, ed., N. H. Torchyner, A, A. Kubek, A. Tcheri-
kover, B. Shortman, (Tel Aviv: 1940)
Lauterbach, Jesus J. Lauterbach, " J e s u s 'm ^ e Talmud," in Rabbinic Essays
by J. Lauterbach (New York: 1973).
Lauterbach, Rabbinic Essays J. Lauterbach, Rabbinic Essays
Leg, De Legatione ad Gaium
Leg. All. i, ii, in Legum Aliegoria
Lev. Leviticus
Lieberman, Greek S. Lieberman, Greek in Jewish Palestine: Studies in tht
Life and Manners of Jewish Palestine in the II-IV
Centuries CM. (New York: 1965)
Lieberman, How Much S. Lieberman, "How Much Greek in Jewish Palestine?"
Greek ? Biblical and other Studies, ed., A. Altmann, (Cam-
bridge: 1963)
Liddell-Scott Liddeil & Scott, Greek-English Lexicon, 9th ed., (Ox-
ford; 1940)
Lk. Luke
Loeb Loeb Classics Edition, e.g. Philo, tr. F. H. Colson and
G. Whitaker and R. Marcus (Cambridge: Harvard
University Press, 1971)
XX LIST OF ABBREVIATIONS
LXX Septuagint
m mishnah
Maas. Maaseroth
Makk. Makkoth
Mai, Malachi
Marmorstein, Background A. Marmorstein, "The Background of the Haggadah,"
HUCA, 6 (1929)
Marmorstein, Essays in A. Marmorstein, Essays in Anthropomorphism, vol. II of
Anthropomorphism The Old Rabbinic Doctrine of God (New York: 1937)
Marmorstein, The Old A. Marmorstein, The Old Rabbinic Doctrine of God
Rabbinic Doctrine of (London: 1937)
God, also ORDOG
Marmorstein, RGS A. Marmorstein, Religionsgeschichtliche Studien l Heft:
Die Bezeichnungen für Christen, und Gnostischen im
Talmud und Midras (Schotschau: 1910)
Marmorstein, Studies A. Marmorstein, Studies in Jewish Theology ed., J. Ra-
binowitz (Oxford: 1950)
Marmorstein, Unity A. Marmorstein, The Unity of God in Rabbinic Litera-
ture, HUCA, 1 (1923).
Meeks, The Prophet-King W. Mceks, The Prophet-King: Moses Traditions and the
Johauuine Chri.\tology (Leiden; 1967)
Meg. Megillah
Meil. Meilah
Men. Menahoth
MGWJ Monatsschrift für die Geschichte und Wissenschaft des
Judentums
Mic. Mica h
Mid. Tan. Midrash Tannaim
Midd. Middoth
Mig. De Migratione Abrahamo
Mikw. Mikwaoth
Mk. Mark
M. K a t Moed Katati
Moore G. F, Moore, Judaism (Cambridge: 1927-40)
Mos, i, ii De Vita Mosis
MRI Mekhiita debe R, Ishmael
MRShY Mekhüta of R. Simeon b. Yohai
M. Sh. Maaser Sheni
M.T. massoretic text
Mt. Matthew
Mut. De Mutatione Nominum
Nah. Nahum
Naz, Nazir
Ned. • Nedarim
Neg. Negaim
Neh. Nehemiah
Neusner, Traditions of the J. Neusner, "The Rabbinic Traditions about the Pharisees
Pharisees before 70 A.D.: The Problem of Oral Transmission,"
JJS, 22 (1971).
NHW J. Lewy, Neuhebräisches & chaldäisches Wörterbuch über
die Talmudim & Midrashim (Leipzig: 1876)
Nidd. Niddah
NT Novum Testamentum
LIST OF ABBREVIATIONS XXI
Strom. Stromateis
Stud. Patr. Studia Patristica
Sukk. 'Sukkah
t tosefta
T 1, 2, 3, 4, 5 Tanna of the first through fifth generations
Tarn. Tamid
Taan. Taanith
Tanh. B. Tanhuma in Buber's edition
TDNT Theological Dictionary of the New Testament
Teb. Y. Tebui Yom
Tern. Temurah
Ter. Tertullian
Test. Abr. Testament of Abraham
Test. Ash. Testament of Asher
Test. Ben. Testament of Benjamin
Test. Jud, Testament of Judah
Test. Lev. Testament of Levi
Test. Naph. Testament of Naphtali
Test. Reub. Testament of Reuben
Test. Zeb. Testament of Zebulun
Tg. T argu m
1 Th. 1 Thessalonians
2 Th. 2 Thessalonians
Theodor-AIbeck J. Theodor & C. Albeck, Midrash Bereshit Rabba, Critical
Edition with Notes and Commentary (in Hebrew) 2nd
printing, corrected. (Jerusalem: 1965)
i Tim. 1 Timothy
2 Tim. 2 Timothy
Tit. Titus
TO Targum Onkelos
TJ Targum of Jerusalem
TJ II Fragmentary Targum
TP Palestinian Targum (TJ, TJ II)
Toh. Tohoroth
TWNT Theologisches Wörterbuch zum Neuen Testament
Ukf/. Uktzîn
Urbach, Se/.ec.r IL Urbach, The Sages, their Concepts and Beliefs (Jeru-
salem: 1969, in Hebrew)
Urbach, 5<?r/-i?/ Torah IL Urbach, "The Tradition about Secret Torah" in Studies
in Mysticism and Religion presented to Gershom Scho-
lem on his 70th Birthday by Pupils, Colleagues and
friends (Jerusalem: 1967).
USQR Union Seminary Quarterly Review
U.W. "Ursprung des Welt" (The Origin of World) from the
Coptic Gnostic Library (untitled work)
Virt. De Virtute
Vit. Cont. De Vita Contemplativa
VT Vetus Testamentum
Vulg. Vulgate
Weiss, Dor I. "Weiss, Dor Dor WeDorshaw, 5 vols. (Wilno: 1911)
Winston, Iranian D. Winston, "The Iranian Component in the Bible, Apo-
Component crypha and Qumran: A Review of the Evidence," HR,
5 (1966), 183-216.
Wolfson, Philo H. Wolfson, Philo: Foundations of Religious Philosophy
XXIV I.IST OF ABBREVIATIONS
K = > a o — M
—r
•m* ' B 1 *= N
G D = S
£
T .-.= D S7 —
n — H *\ £3 = P
i W r s= S
•
T z P = Q
n ^ I-I «1 „ R
Ü .= T E
p S
i
Y fc = s
1 3 = K n ~ l
»? - L
Greek
y —e
0 = th
1 - x
u — y; u in diphthongs
f = ph
X = ch
V, - ps
Ü) = Ô
PART ONE
INTRODUCTION
CHAPTER ONE
T W O P O W E R S IN HEAVEN
1
By gnosticism, I mean primarily that religion of salvation in late antiquity which
posited an evil secondary god who created this world, making it impossible for any
but the elect, by virtue of their knowledge (gnosis) of the high god to find salvation.
Gnosticism is the extreme form of a much broader trend in the centuries immediately
surrounding Jesus' life. Social alienation, pessimism, other worldliness, secret societies,
all may be loosely described as gnostic. But, for reasons which will soon grow
apparent, anti-cosmic dualism will be taken as the primary criterion separating the
phenomenon of gnosis and the movement of gnosticism. See Yamauchi, Pre-Christian
Gnosticism, pp. 13-28 for a discussion of the problems in defining gnosticism. (Full
references for frequently cited works can be found in the list of abbreviations, p. xv f.)
4 INTRODUCTION
is lack of firm proof that the term "two powers in heaven" referred
either to Christians or to gnostics exclusively (as if they were separate
movements!) compounded by a great deal of confusion about what the
heretical doctrine was.
Unfortunately, I cannot claim to have identified the heretics in
every case. In fact, many of my remarks will be cautionary—showing
that an earlier scholar's identification of a report of "two powers"
either as Christian or as gnostic cannot be firmly maintained. However,
in one very early, very important text Ï can identify one group as the
indicated heresy by excluding the others. This has significant implica-
tions for our understanding of the first century. More often, I will
try to show that both Christians and gnostics (and others as well)
became the targets of the particular rabbinic polemic which the title
"two powers" denoted. Previous studies have tended to make identifi-
cations casually, so even negative conclusions or mixed conclusions
will be significant. It would also be significant to demonstrate that the
rabbis put Christianity and gnosticism in the same category to argue
against them. Furthermore there is new evidence suggesting that
Christians and gnostics were not the only targets for the title of
"two powers" heretics. I will try to show where the reports can be
related to other groups, whose lives or writings can be more firmly
dated than the rabbinic tradition. Whenever it is possible to isolate
reports and date them (a constant concern throughout the paper)
I will try to sketch out a history of the various heresies in Judaism
which, in turn, may illuminate the darkness regarding the origins
of Christianity and gnosticism.
Needless to say, if the problem of the "two powers" heresy could
be solved in a straightforward manner, it would already have been
solved. However, writers like the Christian heresiologists, who com-
posed special tracts against their enemies, were rare, and an intel-
lectual like Origen, who actually quoted his opponent copiously, was
unique. The rabbis stuck closer to a more effective procedure of their
day for dealing with opponents—allusion and polemic. They did little
to characterize their enemies, especially when to do so would have had
the effect of spreading the error further. Such an exercise would have
impressed them as unwittingly publicizing evil or, as they would have
said, as "an opening of the mouth for Satan." Consequently, identifying
any of the opponents of the rabbis in rabbinical texts Is still a vexing
problem.
We must realize that problems abound even in the definition and
TWO POWERS IN HEAVEN 5
:i
Sec Goeran Forkman, The Limits of the Religious Community: Expulsion from
the Religious Community within the Qumran Sect, within Rabbinic Judaism and within
Primitive Christianity (Luncl; 1972). He relics on the work of C. H. Hunzinger,
Die jüdische Bannpraxis im ne ut a s tarn entlich en Zeitalter (Göttingen: 1954) and J. E.
Mignard, Jewish and Christian Cultic Discipline to the Middle of the Second Century
(Boston: 1966).
f
See p. 98 f.
•» See Berakhoth 28b. An original reference to minim in the "blessing" is generally
conceded even though the contemporary liturg/ has omitted the phrase. ït can be
reconstructed from versions in the Cairo Geniza. See Elbogen, p. 37 f.
6
Herford (p. 17 f.) tried to identify min with Christian but that is overly-simple,
as will become apparent.
TWO POWERS IN HEAVEN 7
7
According to j . Sanh. 10:5, there were 21 different kinds of minim at the
destruction of the Temple. While the number "twenty four" must be purely con-
ventional, it illustrâtes the complexities in identifying sectarian groups. The "min"
who derided Alexander the Great for rising before the Jewish High Priest, thus
showing him deference (Lev. R. xiu), is usually identified as a Samaritan, because
Samaritans are reported in other legends to have criticized the Jews before Alexander.
Ber. 9:5 refers to the institution of a benediction with the words "from eternity to
eternity" which has been taken as a counter-measure against the Sadducees who
rejected the concept of resurrection. A variety of Jewish Christians or gnostics have
been seen as the opponents of the rabbis in b. Sanh. 39b. See JE, VIII, 595 for
examples of these conventional identifications. S. M. Wagner has attempted to define
several categories of deviation in rabbinic writings in Religious Non-Conformity in
Ancient Jewish Life. Unpub. dissertation, Yeshiva University, 1964. However, the
terms may have changed in meaning over their long history of use in tannaitic and
amorale literature.
8
T h e ambiguous translation "two powers in heaven" has been maintained with the
knowledge that the Hebrew term is only approximated by the .English "power." Its
different meanings should perhaps be noted at the outset. From the root R-S-Y, it has
the general sense of power of disposal, permission, authority. In detail, it means the
right of possession to something (see Foerster, TDNT, "exousta" 565 for examples)
the authority of commission, the right or the freedom to do something, as heirs and
8 INTRODUCTION
Of course, most rabbinic passages just use "two powers" and assume
the reader will know what it means. Only a few passages in rabbinic
literature actually elaborate on the subject of "two powers in heaven,"
and even these few passages define it from a confusing variety of
perspectives. Some of the passages treat "two powers in heaven" as one
category of heretical doctrine. Sifre Dt. 329, for instance, mentions
those who believe in "no power in heaven," followed by those who
believe in "two powers in heaven," and finally, those who believe
descendants at law (in Ket, 9:5; a divorced women in Ned. 10:3; the marriage Ned.
[0:3 etc.).
When contrasted with H W B H (obligatory) it means "optional" or "recommended"
or "voluntary." It can mean "power" in the sense of "capability" or "ability," as when
someone is able to move himself voluntarily, under his own power.
However, since the more normal word for power in the sense of "capability" is
KH, RSWT should be distinguished as power in the sense or" "authority" as when a
piece of land is within the power of a person or community. Indeed, the terms does
have many legal ramifications, in the fixing of limits on property rights and obliga-
tions. Accordingly, STY R S W Y W T BSMYM has often been taken to mean "two
dominions in heaven." i use the more ambiguous term "power" because the texts
show that dominion is not its primary meaning. Rather, as I will show in reference
to the Greek understanding of the term "authority," RSWT often has the implication
of a figure or person and means authority in the sense that the figure has capability
independent of God. Indeed, "two gods" is a common synonym.
The implication of "personage" may clearly be seen in the New Testament use
of the word. In Greek, dynamis (power, capability) and exousia (power, authority)
may be synonymous (see Liddeli-Scott, TDNT). The LXX often translates M L K W T
(dominion) as exousia or dynamis, though sometimes with other words as well.
Strictly speaking, dynamis would imply an impersonal power when predicated of
deity whereas exou.ua would imply a persona! power. However, these distinctions
become clouded in Hellenistic Jewish texts where the dynamis of the deity is some-
times hypostatised as a separate person. (Grundmann, dynamis TDNT, 11, 295). Thus
the exercise of God's power may be personified in the forces of angels who bear
different names, such as archai, kyriotëtes, eklektoi, exousia/, thronoi, dynameis. (Cf.,
Bertholdt Stade, Theologie des A.T., f (191 1) 375, for examples). The Hebrew word
and the N T usage of exousia seem parallel except in matters where the N T theolo-
gically differs from rabbinic discussions. (Foerster, TDNT). In the N T , exousia may
also mean the power of Satan, though it is sometimes seen as a derivative of God's
power. In relation to Jesus, where it denotes his divinely given power and authority
to act, it goes beyond rabbinic theology where only God can act independently in the
heavenly realm, and thus gives credence to the rabbinic use as a charge against
Christian heretics. In Christianity, it may also be used for the authority imparted
to the church. (Foerster, op. cit. for examples.) Then too, the N T uses exousia,
together with archai, dynameis, and kyriotetes to describe supernatural beings.
It is clear that what the rabbis objected to was not other heavenly beings. They too
told stories about angels. However, they were particularly scrupulous to avoid the
connotation that any heavenly being could exercise independent authority and every
detail in characterizing a heavenly being's personality made that danger more real.
It will become clear, then, that the rabbis will object to "two powers" heresy because
they view it as a "two authorities" theology.
TWO POWERS IN HEAVEN 9
that God has "neither the power to kill nor to preserve." Of course,
the categories for defining the heretics lack consistency. The expected
parallel—many powers in heaven—does not appear here though it is
attested elsewhere. The third group is defined in different categories
than the first and second. The reason for this is that the rabbinic
source is primarily concerned with the exegesis of the scripture under
consideration—Dt. 32:39—which turns out to be a powerful argument
against heretics. It is only secondarily concerned with categories of
doctrine. Throughout the paper considerable attention will be devoted
to the pattern of scriptural citation because the scriptural supports
for heresy and orthodoxy were of primary importance to the rabbis.
Their attention to scripture will guide us in reconstructing the argument
between the rabbis and the heretics, at least as the rabbis saw it. After
this has been done, it will be possible to assess the rabbis' perspective
about the content of the heresy.
By outlining the difficulties encountered merely in defining terms,
I am suggesting that previous studies have artificially simplified the
problem. Yet, I do not mean to imply that the previous research is
irrelevant in the gargantuan task of identifying these heretics. Previous
researchers have been mature scholars educated since youth in tradi-
tional texts. Rather, the passage of time has brought new information
and new methodologies to light making it possible to refine their
insights and correct their biases. To appreciate the problem of partiality,
one must survey the approaches that scholarship has taken on the
problem.
Heinrich Graetz began the study of "two powers" heretics. He was
attempting to relate the reports of gnosticism and anti-gnostic polemic
in the writings of the church fathers with reports of sectarianism and
heresy in rabbinic texts. ° Graetz's analysis of gnosticism centered on
the figure of Elisha ben Abuya (ca. 110-135) whom tradition had
branded the arch-heretic. Elisha ben Abuya was disrespectfully named
"Aher" (Other), by the rabbis, as if he were too infamous to name
directly. Graetz saw Elisha b. Abuya as the model antinomian gnostic.
The relationship between Aher's apostasy and "two powers in heaven"
is based on a long passage in the Babylonian Talmud (Hag. 14b) which
0
The literature on Jewish gnosticism from Krochmal, Moreh Nebukei Hazeman
(Lemberg: 1851) and Graetz, Gnosiicismus can be found in Blau's article in JE,
V, 686. See also Weiss, Dor, II, 125 ff. Some modern problems are summed up in
R. Mel. Wilson, The Gnostic Problem (London: 1958).
10 INTRODUCTION
u
ianity. J. Z. Lauterbach, suggested that refutations of those who
believe in "two powers" are arguments against Christianity when it
was still considered a Jewish heresy. To demonstrate this assertion he
cited Dt. R. II, 33 where Solomon is reported by the rabbis to have
stated categorically that the one God has neither son or brother. Since
some texts associate this heresy with "two powers" Lauterbach felt
that the second heavenly power must be Jesus. "Two powers" couid
only refer to Persian dualism if the parties were antagonistic, 12 whüe
Christian theology might easily have been understood by the rabbis to
posit a second divine figure working in harmony with and claiming
to be the son of the one God.
R. Travers Herford 13 also dealt with the rabbinic evidence but was
misled by prior assumptions. As he saw it, his task was to collect
all the passages describing Christianity in the Talmuds and midrash.
However, he quickly took up the thesis that all the references to the
minim refer to Christians, a view which he maintained in spite of
evidence to the contrary. Predictably, he came to the conclusion that
the minim who believed in "two powers in heaven" were Christians,
though probably gnostic Christians. Of course, like other scholars of
this period, his conclusion was not wrong for the entire history of the
heresy. Herford's primary mistake was methodological. Having taken
up a theory, everything was made to fit it, despite information which
contradicted his thesis.
Only one study in this period dealt solely with the heresy of "two
powers ta heaven." That was the work of S. Rubin. 14 His study defined
"two powers" as any kind of dualism. Hence, he dealt with any philo-
sophical dualism as "two powers in heaven," mentioning the talmudic
period only superficially and without any real historical method. He
also fancifully assumed that the talmudic dualists were Marrichaeans
because the term m in resembles the name Mani.
A more significant direction was taken by A. Marmorstein is who
studied eight tradition clusters concerning those who believe in "two
u
Lauterbach, Jesus.
12
Lauterbach is assuming that sons and brothers could not be antagonistic in the
heavenly economy. However, he neglects to mention that Ahura Mazda and Angra
Mainyu are spoken of as brothers in Persian literature and that a monotheistic heresy
in Zoroastrianism, namely Zurvanism, assumed that there was a common father
for both.
13
R. Travers Herford, Christianity in Talmud and Midrash.
u
Solomon Rubin, The Belief in Two Powers fin Hebr.] (Krakow; 1908-09).
15
Marmorstein, RGS, I, pp. 66-81.
12 INTRODUCTION
16
Marmorstein, Unity, 467-99.
17
See also Marmorstein, Background, pp. 141-204 for a discussion of Maroon and
the problem of dualism in rabbinic literature,
18
See Yamauchi, Pre-Christian Gnosticism.
10
Büchler, Minim.
TWO POWERS IN HEAVEN 13
20
His argument for the association is made by reviewing the scriptural passages
used to fight dualism. These would include Gen. 1:26 ("Let us make man in our
image") where the possible interpretation of God's having an associate in creation
proved difficult to the rabbis. Of course, the rabbis record many instances of these
difficult passages. One such instance, Gen. 19:24, was discussed in Sepphoris around
200 Ci;, by ïshmael ben Yosi. The verse reads "The Lord rained down fire and
brimstone on Sodom and Gomorrah from the Lord from heaven." The difficulty here
is a possible inference of two gods from the otherwise superfluous "from the Lord."
As Büchler points out, Justin Martyr used this verse in his Dialogue with Trypho
to demonstrate that the God who appeared to Abraham, Isaac and Jacob, was the
Christ and a different divine figure from the God who had planned the creation.
Further, one of the Jews accompanying Trypho admits that one of the two angels
who had gone to Sodom was called "God" by Abraham. Apparently, Justin Martyr
also knew of Jews who allowed one name of God to refer to something like a logos
but refused to identify the logos with Jesus as he had done. Since Justin also lived in
Tiberias at the same time as R. Ishmael b. Yose, we have the beginning of the kind
of "statistical" or demographic evidence that Marmorstein was seeking.
21 See p. 118.
22 Seep. 221 f.
- :ï Moore, Judaism in the First Centuries of the Christian Era; The Age of the
Tännaim (New York: 1971), I, p. 365 f.
14 INTRODUCTION
In his book, - 4 Moritz Friedländer put forth the thesis that gnosticism
is a pre-Christian phenomenon which originated in antinomian circles
in the Jewish community of Alexandria. -^ This was a clear statement of
the priority of gnosticism to Christianity; it was also innovative in its
suggestion that gnosticism originated in Judaism. - ü
Later in the twentieth century, the "History of Religions" school came
to similar conclusions from different evidence for the priority of
cgnosticism to Christianity. They saw the predecessors of gnosticism in
Persian and Mandaic texts and theorized that gnosticism grew out of
Jewish thought that had absorbed Indo-Iranian themes. 2 7
Based on this consensus, many New Testament scholars feel that
Christianity actually adapted a pre-existent gnostic savior myth to the
facts of Jesus' life. - 8 The discovery of gnostic texts at Nag Hammadi
has verified the existence of a non-Christian gnosticism in the third
century, but no document of pre-Christian gnosticism (which according
to Bultmann developed out of a combination of Persian mythology
with Israelite traditions) has been discovered. Nor has any one docu-
ment from the early periods evinced the entire so-called gnostic salvation
myth. In fact, we lack any pre-Christian texts which evidence the kind
of anticosmic, exclusivistic beliefs evident in the Nag Hammadi texts.
Without some contemporary evidence we cannot be sure even of the
major tenets of any possible gnosticism in Jesus' time. In order to
point out this difficulty, a group of researchers, gathered at Messina,
agreed to use "gnosticism" to refer exclusively both to the phenomena
outlined by the church fathers and to the later developments of those
phenomena, while using "gnosis" to refer to gnostic traits and themes
occurring earlier. 29 No agreement was reached as to whether the gnosis
2t
Friedender, Gnosticisnius. Fnedlunder is also indebted to M. Joël, Blicke in
die Religionsgeschichte zu Anfang des zweiten christlichen Jahrhunderts (Breslau:
1880),
- 5 Philo speaks of these sectarians in Mig. 86-93. See Friedländer, Gnosticismus,
p. A-9.
-f» For a detailed analysis of this aspect of FriedUinder's work see Birger Pearson.,
"Friedländer Revisited: Alexandrian Judaism and Gnostic Origins," Stud/a Philonica,
2 (1973), 23-39.
27
The accomplishments of this school of scholarship are criticaUy surveyed by
Carsten Colpe, Die religionsgeschichtliche Schule (Göttingen: 1961).
- s This theory particularly characterizes those scholars influenced by R. Bultmann,
to mention the foremost scholar having held this view. For a short review of the
evidence brought by scholars for the existence of a gnostic redeemer myth see Meeks,
The Prophet-King (Leiden: 1967), pp. 6-17. The history of scholarship on gnosticism
is summarized at greater length by Yamauchi, Pre-Christian Gnosticism, pp. 13-28.
16 INTRODUCTION
'•& Kaufmann Kohler and F. G. Hoffmann (JE, V, 5 f.) criticize Zeller (Gesch. der
Philosophie, 2nd ed., iii, 250) for the notion that the Essenes espoused duaüsm.
:î0
Exactly what Zarathrustra contributed to Zoroastrianism is still hotly contested.
See, e.g., Ilya Gershevitch, "Zoroaster's Own Contribution to Zoroastrianism," JNES,
23 (1964), 12-31.
T W O POWERS IN HEAVEN 19
40
E.g., R. C. Zaehner, Dawn and Twilight of Zoroastrianism (London: 1961),
pp. 175-92.
41
Diog. Laer. Proem., 8. See C. Clemen, fontes Historiae Religionis persicae
(Bonn: 1920), p. 75. Also Die griechischen unci lateinischen 'Nachrichten über die
persische Religion ( d e s s e n : 1920).
42
Morton Smith, Palestinian Parties and Politics that Shaped the Old Testament
(New York: 1971), p. 73.
43 Morton Smith, "II Isaiah and the Persians," JAOS. 83 (1963), 415-21.
44
See, e.g., Claus "Westermann, Isaiah 40-66 (Philadelphia: 1969), p. 162.
20 INTRODUCTION
polemic would certainly fit the new picture of religion in the Persian
Empire of II Isaiah's time—-a picture which sees Zoroastrianism as a
small minority even within the Persian ruling class, who also tolerated
both the traditional religions of its conquered peoples and several non-
Zoroastrian strains of their own Persian religion.
The conclusions about Persian thought relevant to our study can
thus be summarized in the following way: Although Zoroastrianism
can be pinpointed with some probability in Isaiah's writings and
although Isaiah's writing serves as the basis of the rabbinic polemic,
it is not necessarily true that Zoroastrians were the heretics who believe
in "two powers in heaven." Another piece of evidence which argues
against the identification of Zoroastrians with "two powers" heretics
is the fact that many rabbinic writings do not hesitate to identify
Zoroastrians by name and to name their gods:
A magi (sic) once said to Arnemar: From the middle of your (body)
upwards you belong to Ormazd; from the middle downwards to
Ahriman. The latter asked: Why then does Ahriman permit Ormazd
to send water through his territory? 45
The Magi are openly defeated. There is no reason for the rabbis to
use more obscure terms.
The Dead Sea Scrolls, however, have given us significant evidence
of dualism within Judaism. Some scholars even claim that Qumran
was a case of Jewish sectarian absorption of Persian thought. T. H.
Gaster, for instance, sees Qumran as the Jewish form of Zoroastrian-
ism. 4f> Whether or not they were "Zoroastrian Jews" is still problem-
atic, but it is growing clear that the Dead Sea covenanters were a kind
of Essene. 47 Because of the Dead Sea Scrolls, we can be certain that
some apocalyptic and sectarian movements within Judaism developed
dualistic tendencies which could have been described as "two powers
in heaven" by the rabbis. Even without raising the issue of their rela-
tionship to Zoroastrianism (which, in any case, was unnoticed by their
contemporaries) the Qumranites can be seen as a contemporary source
of dualism.
In the Manual of Discipline of the Dead Sea Scrolls, ethical dualism
is boldly outlined:
45
San. 39a. tr. Epstein.
4ß See Gaster, The Dead Sea Scrolls in English (New York: 1956), p. 190.
47
Dupont-Sommer, The Essene Writings of Qumran. F. M. Cross, The Ancient
Library of Qumran (New York: 3958), pp. -19-106.
TWO POWERS IN HEAVEN 21
He created man for dominion over the earth; and he set in him two
spirits for him to set his course by them until the set time of his
visitation. They are the spirits of truth and of perversity. In a dwelling
of light are the generations of truth and from a well of darkness come
the generations of perversity. In the hand of the prince of lights is
the dominion of all the sons of righteousness; in the ways of light will
they walk. In the hand of the angel of darkness is all the dominion
of the sons of perversity and in the ways of darkness they will walk.
And by the angel of darkness are the errors of all the sons of right-
eousness; and all their sins and iniquities and guiltiness and deeds of
transgression are in his dominion according to the secrets of God for
his appointed time. All their afflictions and set times of their troubles
are under the dominion of his hostility and all the spirits of his portion
are set to trip up the sons of light, but the God of Israel and his angel
of truth are the help of the sons of light. 48
Just as the two spirits of truth and error vie for the rule of man's
heart, so does a man belong to the good party of righteousness or the
evil party of iniquity. From the War Scroll, it becomes quite clear that
the Qumraii group felt itself to be the elect which, though then few in
numbers, would one day serve with the angels as God's divine army,
vindicating their present outcast status with victory at the end of time.
Although the Dead Sea sectarians seem to be dualists, they also
believed in one transcendent God above all the angels. For them, each
of the moral forces, good and evil, had a captain. The angel of darkness
and the angel of truth would correspond to the spirit of light and
the spirit of darkness. Other apocalyptic documents contain similar
dualistic statements. ' i9 Otzen, r>° for instance, pointed out dualistic
phrases in the Testament of the Twelve Patriarchs: "Know, therefore,
my children that two spirits wait upon man—the spirit of truth and
4a
A. R. C. Leany, The Rule of Qumran and its Meaning (London: 1966), p. 144
to I Q S 3:17 f.
4i)
See the recent comprehensive article on extra-rabbinic dualism by John G.
Gammie "Spatial and Ethical Dualism in Jewish Wisdom and Apocalyptic Literature,"
JBL, 93 (1974), 356-385.
5(
> Otzen, "Die neugefundene hebräischen Sektenschriften," ST, 7 (1953), 135 f.
For more possible "Two natures" arguments see Apoc. of Abraham 22, I Enoch i; 1,
38:1, 89:10 f., The Wisdom of Solomon 3:2 ff., 4:3 ff., 21:13 ff. See also Hermetic
Writings I 18, 21. IX, 5. This same legend also occurs in pagan writing. Plato,
Phaedrus, 248, among the Stoics see Arnim, j . , Stoicorum Veterum Fragmenta
(Stuttgart: 1958) I, 216; III, 658. Diogenes Laertes, ed. Hicks (Cambridge: 1958),
VII, 127. Additional references provided by John Gager, unpublished paper on
dualism. Also, S. Aalen, Die Begriffe 'Licht' und 'Finsternis' im AT, im Spätjudentum,
und im Rabbanismus (Oslo: 1951).
22 INTRODUCTION
the spirit of deceit," si a n c i "Two ways hath God given to the children
of men and two wills, two places and two goals." 5 2 Of course, there
is room for saying that this dualism is less extreme than that of Qumran,
merely reflecting a belief in two opposing human impulses. 5 3 Traces
of this kind of dualism even occur in rabbinic thought where they are
not regarded as heretical. The rabbis developed their own theory of
man's two impulses, the impulse toward good, and the impulse toward
evil. r»4 In a bara/ta, R. Akiba is also supposed to have articulated a
theory of extreme, ethical dualism:
51
Testament of Judah 20:1.
r
>- Testament of Asher I:* ff.
r>;i Wernberg-Moeller, "A Reconsideration of the Two Spirits in the Rule of the
Community," RQ, 3 1961-2 and M. Travers, "The Two Spirits of the Rule of the
Community," ib/d,t 449, 541 believe that the Qumran community as well should be
considered as believing only in two impulses within man. However, the hypostasization
of angels overseeing these impuises as a major theme indicates the presence of meta-
physical existence of the two forces, whatever they may be considered within the
heart of man.
5t
See Urbach, Sct^es, pp. 415-427.
iy,}
H.tg. 15a., Tr. Hpstein.
TWO POWERS IN HEAVEN 23
50
The history of the argument about the nature of the Shekbinah, Memra, and
Yeqara is ably summed up by A. M. Goldberg in Untersuchungen über die Vor-
stellung von der Schekhinah in der frühen rahbinischen Literatur, pp, 1-12.
57
Several scholars have seen relationships between Jewish heresy and the various
schools of Hellenistic philosophy. One should mention perhaps Joël, whose thesis is
that the mystical texts discussed briefly above were the product of Jewish speculation
in Platonic and neo-Pythagorean modes. H. Fischel has also pointed out many
relationships between Jewish traditions and Epicurean, Stoic and Cynic thought.
(Henry Fischel, Rabbinic Literature and Greco-Roman Philosophy: A study of Epi-
curea and Rhetorica in Early Midrashic Writings, Leiden: 1973). He feels that the
traditions about the four who entered the pardes, which we discussed previously,
are linked with Jewish epicureanism.
24 INTRODUCTION
figure of Wisdom, the name of God, and the great archangel that
mediated the Sinai theophany. It is possible that underlying Philo's
philosophical language are exegetical traditions which he shares with
many other Jews.
Any angel who assumed a primary role in heterodox Jewish tradition
might have been the subject of the rabbinic injunction. This would
include traditions about the angel Melchizedek, a heavenly Jacob,
Michael, Gabriel, or the hero Enoch. The rabbis themselves associated
"two powers in heaven" with Aher, who had travelled to heaven and
seen the angel Metatron in a posture that suggested two powers.
The relevance of the "son of man" tradition reiterates what has
already become obvious: Christianity must be considered as one of the
prime candidates for the charge of "two powers in heaven," because
the Christian community relied on many of the traditions of a principal
r 8
angel for its exaltation christology. > Where a glorified christology
developed, criticism of "two powers in heaven" could be levelled by the
rabbis. The evidence has already been reviewed in discussing the work
of Buechler and Marmorstein.
We have few clear references to Christianity in the talmuds and
midrash. Presumably this is partly due to censoring of texts by medieval
Church authorities. Most references to Jesus are late, such as: "On the
eve of Passover they hanged Jesus and a herald went out before him
for 40 days. Let him be stoned for he has committed sorcery and has
deceived Israel and led it astray." 5 0 However the charge that Jesus
was a magician was early; Justin (i<) refers to it. The New Testament
implies it. Since historical references to first-century Christians are un-
sure and obscure in the talmud and midrash, Christianity becomes an
even better candidate for the charge of "two powers in heaven." ei
Most of what can be said of Christianity as a candidate for "two
58
N. A. DaM, "The Johannine Church and History" in W. Klassen and G. Snyder,
Current Issues in New Testament Interpretation (New York: 1962), suggests a rela-
tionship between Merkabah-traditions and Christianity, especially the Gospel of John,
See also Dahl, "Christology notes."
50
b. San. 43a. Notice the later rabbinic attention to halakhic procedure. Jesus
should have been stoned for "sorcery" and "leading astray," not crucified, which was
improper execution in rabbinic law.
00
Dialogue 69:7.
ül
Herford, Marmorstein, Büchler all argue that polemics about men claiming to be
gods reflect debates with Christianity. See also Lauterbach, Jesus esp. pp. 550-565
for more arguments. See also Winston, Iranian Component, pp. 183-216, appendix II
for review of the literature on the Christian use of the Balaam oracles and the Jewish
polemic against it.
TWO POWERS IN HEAVEN 25
( 2
' Jacob Neusner, Traditions of the Pharisees pp. 1-18. Also see some of his
longer works, as, From Politics to Piety: The E?nergence of Pharisaic Judaism (Engle-
wood Cliffs: 1973); A Life of Johanan ben Zakkai (Leiden: 1962, 1970); Develop-
ment of a Legend: Studies on the Traditions Concerning Yohanan ben Zakkai (Leiden:
1970); The Rabbinic Traditions About the Pharisees before 70 (Leiden: 1971); A
History of the Mishnaic Law of Purities (Leiden: 1974 f.); See also W . Sibley Towner,
The Rabbinic "Enumeration of Scriptural Examples" (Leiden: 1973); and B. Ger-
hardsson, Memory and Manuscript: Oral Tradition and Written Tradition in Rabbinic
Judaism and Early Christianity (Lund: Ï96I).
26 INTRODUCTION
has faded or after the tradition has been written down, although
literary styles in tan influence the tradition in different ways. 6 3 These
observations, however inexact, have been used extensively in European
and biblical folklore. In the study of the New Testament they have
been massively employed to distinguish between the traditions which
go back to Jesus himself and those which are probably products of the
early church. 64 The application of this technique has restricted our
confidence severely. For instance, in the search for the Jesus-layer of the
gospel traditions, the overriding criterion for authenticity has had
to be that of dissimilarity. Only those traditions essentially dissimilar
from the general ideological milieu and later tendencies of the church
can be firmly allowed as authentic to Jesus. fi5
Redaction criticism is the name for scholarly analysis of the motives
behind the editing of a document in its present form. It asks the
question—a cut bono—to whose advantage is the preservation of the
statement under discussion. As such, it often isolates the Tendenz
characteristic not just of the literary redactor (as was originally hoped),
but also of a long period of editing. Form criticism and redaction
criticism, then, are complementary ways to study any tradition—the first
emphasizing the context out of which the tradition arose, the second
stressing the perspectives and biases of the people who preserved it.
Some rules of tradition formation, of course, hold for all folklore.
Others are particular to specific cultures and must be examined indi-
vidually. In the study of rabbinic literature, adoption of form and
tradition criticism has not been quick. Consequently, there are few
specific principles that can be generalized about rabbinic thought as
«» See p, 121.
28 INTRODUCTION
With reference to the "two powers" heresy, I believe I can show some
positive results from Christian and extra-rabbinic literature, even given
the methodological precautions, if the reader is patient enough to
follow a necessarily long and sometimes tedious argument. Unfortuna-
tely, not until one places the results of the analysis of rabbinic text in
the context of extra-rabbinic, Jewish-sectarian, and Christian writing
does the great antiquity and significance of the "two powers" traditions
become manifest.
The proper procedure for this study, then, is to collect, collate,
and consider all the evidence about "two powers in heaven," both in
the tannaitic and amoraic periods. This corpus will itself be important
because the collation has never been accomplished before. Close analysis
will be necessary to isolate the various generic and formal characteristics
of the traditions, to separate the stages in the development of the
argument itself and to reveal clues about the identities of the heretics.
Sometimes it will be necessary to distinguish many different layers of
tradition in one passage. Often no firm dating will be possible. Partic-
ular attention will have to be paid to the scriptural passages from which
the heretics derive their doctrines. But only after these considerations
have been weighed can we discover whether the biblical passages were
actually used by some contemporary dualistic group or were only
biblical stylizations of heresy, invented by the rabbis themselves. This
analysis will be carried out in Section II (The Rabbinic Traditions).
When the rabbinic evidence has been sifted, we will be in a better
position to judge which of the dualistic communities reviewed earlier
in this chapter were the likely targets for the rabbinic polemic at any
isolatable time and place. With the extra-rabbinic evidence we will
also be able to solve some of the ambiguities of the rabbinic texts. For
this reason, many of the final conclusions about the significance of
the rabbinic reports will necessarily be found in the chapters of Section
III dealing with extra-rabbinic evidence. This is, admittedly, an incon-
venient place to look for the conclusions about the rabbinic corpus,
but this complex problem necessitates such a difficult form. I think
the task worth the effort because a new clarity about the rabbinic view
of the rise of Christianity and gnosticism can be gained by the end.'
This information is important for its own sake. But it becomes essential
information when one realizes that the rabbis were among the closest,
most expert, and most concerned contemporary observers of Christianity
and gnosticism.
PART TWO
PASSAGE I
MRSbY MRI
The Mekhilta of R. Simeon b. Yohai, The Mekhilta of R. Ishmael Baho-
p. 81. Bashalah 15. desh 5, Shirta 4.
Another interpretation: YHWH is a
man of war, YHWH is His name.
/ am YHWH your God: Why is this
said?
Because, when the Holy One Blessed Because When
be He was revealed at the sea, He was revealed at the sea,
He appeared to them as a young man He appeared to them as a mighty
making war. hero making war. As it is said,
YHWH is a man of war.
MRSbY MRI
As it is said: Behold now, that I, As it is said; Behold now, that I, even
even, I, am He, etc. (Dt. 32:39) /, am He, etc. ( D t 32:39). Even
Thus says YHWH, the king of Is- unto old age I am the same (Is,
rael, etc. / am YHWH, the first and 46:4). Thus says YHWH the king
the last, etc. (Is. 44:6), of Israel and his Redeemer the Lord
of Hosts, I am the first and the last,
(Is. 44:6). And it says Who has
wrought and done it} He that called
the generations from the beginning.
I, the Lord who am the first, and to
the end I am He. (Is. 41:4).
PR Piska 21 100b l
(Another comment: Face after face) R. Levi said: God faced them in
many guises. To one He appeared standing, and to one seated; (See Gen.
28:13 and Isa. 6:1) to one as a young man, and to one as an old man.
How so? At the time the Holy One, blessed be He, appeared on the Red
Sea to wage war for His children and to requite the Egyptians, He faced them
as a young man, since war is waged best by a young man, as is said The
Lord is a man of war, the Lord is His name (Ex. 15:3). And when the
Holy One, blessed be He, appeared on Mount Sinai to give the Torah to
Israel, He faced them as an old man, for Torah is at its best when it comes
from the mouth of an old man. What is the proof? The verse With aged
men is wisdom, and understanding in length of days (Job 12:12); and
therefore Daniel said: / beheld till thrones were placed, and one that ivas
Ancient of days did sit (Dan. 7:9). In regard to God's guises R. Hiyya bar
Abba said: If a whoreson should say to you, "They are two gods," quote
God as saying in reply: I am the One of the sea and Ï am the One of S'tmi,
(Another comment) R. Levi taught at Sinai the Holy One, blessed be
He, appeared to them with many faces, with a threatening face, with a
severe face, with an angry face, with a joyous face, with a laughing face,
with a friendly face. How so? ... In regard to God's many faces, R. Hiyya
bar Abba taught: Should a whoreson say to you, "They are two gods," reply
to him, Scripture does not say "The gods have spoken ... face after face"
but The Lord has spoken with you face after face.
1
See also Pesikta Rabbatï de Bahodesh, Ex. 20:2 together with Dt. 5:4. Tr. Braude,
p. -121 f. The later midrashim tend to fill in the gaps in reasoning in the earlier ones.
For a description of the rabbis ambiguous style, see Goldin, Song, ad loc.
CONFLICTING APPEARANCES OF GOD 35
2
See Lauterbach, Clarifications, p. 381-188, esp. 184-8.
3 Dan. 7:9, 10, 13, 14.
36 THE EARLY RABBINIC EVIDENCE
have it, the tradition is centered around the Exodus theophanies. Dan.
7:9 is ostensibly a proof-text but is also the locus of the same heretical
traditions, since two different figures are mentioned there as well.
Of course, the rabbis objected to this tradition, saying that the repetition
of the divine name was not to identify "two powers" but to emphasize
God's unity, since the Israelites would also have to recognize God
in another form. In attempting to identify the heretics, we should
look for a doctrine which did associate "two powers" with the names
for God in the Exodus theophany and in Dan. 7. Obviously, from
the rabbinic perspective, but not necessarily at the earliest stage of the
tradition itself, this dangerous exegesis became subsumed under the
unfavorable category of "two powers in heaven." This text gives us no
description of the persons holding such a doctrine.
At the end of the section there is a peroration which articulates
implications present already in the designation "two powers in heaven,"
by directly stating that the doctrine is a threat to monotheism and con-
demning it roundly with the appropriate biblical texts from Isaiah
and Deuteronomy. In fact the verses are so useful as a defense against
the heresy as to characterize the opposition to "two powers" throughout
its entire history and will be important in the attempt to identify the
heretics.
The midrash is saying that, though scripture allows for the inter-
pretation that God may be viewed in various aspects, there is a limit
to how far one may go in ascribing independent motives to the different
hypostases. Not only is there only one God, but there is no possibility
of ever deriving a second deity. It was the same God in Egypt who
was at the Sea; the same in this world as He will be in the world to
come; the same in the past who will be in the future. These descrip-
tions are later rhetorical fluorishes, embellishing and emphasizing an
argument whose assumption has been laid down previously. MRSbY
even introduces the thoughts as "another interpretation." However,
one may ask whether the embellishments are purely arbitrary. In view
of the importance of the name of God in this midrash it is not unlikely
that the midrash is relying on the mysterious name of God which was
revealed to Moses at the burning bush. "I am that I am" is being
interpreted with past and future implications of the Hebrew verb
forms and is being understood to be an eternal pledge to remain with
Israel.
The text in MRI is even more complex and obviously the result
of a long history of redaction. Neither MRI nor MRSbY can itself
38 THE EARLY RABBINIC EVIDENCE
be the ancient tradition. Rather the most ancient layer, which will iater
appear to be tannakic, must be carefully uncovered in comparing them.
The basic structure is similar to the argument in MRSbY and appears
to be based on an exegesis of the name of God as well. In MRI the
rabbis acknowledge that God manifested Himself in two ways in the
Bible. They derive this contention not merely from the repetition of
" Y H W H " in scripture, as MRSbY did, but from the contrast between
the Hebrew name, "YHWH," used to describe the Lord at the sea,
and the other Hebrew name for divinity, "Elohim," used to describe
God at Sinai. At least one possible conclusion based on the two dif-
ferent names of the deity—namely, that two different divinities, God
and Lord, were being described—is condemned as dangerous. Instead,
the rabbis suggest that the solution to the paradox will be found at
Ex. 20:2, the first of the Ten Commandments, which contains both
names of God and declares His unity. Hence, the editor of MRI, by
introducing the orthodox solution based on Ex. 20:2, in his commen-
tary to one of the dangerous passages, Ex. 15:3, allowed no opportunity
for the orthodox opinion to be compromised. He has also added Ex.
20:2 to the list of effective scriptural defense against heresy.
Though the major thrust of the passage seems evident, it contains
many elaborations missing from the MRSbY version, while some parts
of its argument remain obscure. For one thing, a new theme of justice
and mercy, corresponding to young and old manifestations of God,
has been emphasized. This Is facilitated by bringing in more proof-
texts. Ex. 15:3 is taken only as a proof of God's justice. Ex. 24:10 f.,
which is part of the Sinai theophany, is introduced as the proof of
God's mercy. 5 These two seemingly contradictory biblical verses are
compared by the midrash, which then uses Ex. 20:2, the first line of
the Ten Commandments, as the third, decisive text with which to
harmonize the other two. (>
" Just how Ex. 24:10 proves God's mercy will take some explanation, The proof-
text reads "They saw the God of Israel," which, rather than clarifying, adds another
puzzling statement—that a group of people actually saw God. While the text says
that they saw Him, it tells nothing of what they saw. The implication of Ex. 24:11a,
however, offers a possible answer to the problem. The verse states that God did not
lay His hand upon the nobles of the children of Israel. Since the nobles saw God,
and since it says elsewhere in Scriptures that no man may see God and live (Ex.
33:20), then God must have acted mercifully towards the nobles in not laying His
hand upon them (Ex. 24:11a). God's supererogatory behavior is further evidenced
by the fact that, far from punishing the elders, He provides them with food and drink
(Ex. 24:11b). See Goldin, Song, cid loc.
c>
The paradigm for this argument is rule 13 of the Talmudic exposition of the
CONFLICTING APPEARANCES OF GOD 39
Scriptures known as the Baraita of Rabbi Lshmael and found in the introduction to
the Sifra, a tannaitic midrash on Leviticus. See Nils A. Dahl, "Widersprüche in der
Bibel: Ein altes hermeneutisches Problem," Studu Theologien, 25 (1971), 1-19.
7
Lauterbach maintains that the doctrine of God's mercy and justice may be seen
even in MRSbY where Y H W H - A man of war would be a problem since Y H W H
should symbolize God's mercy. This seems correct to me. The point of bringing
in Ex. 24:10 f. here is to prove God's mercy at the giving of the law, not merely his
appearance as an old man in Dan. If any problem can be said to be more basic I
suspect it is the very idea of God portrayed as a man. That is what all the passages
have in common. Not only Dan. 7:9, Kx. 15:3, but also Is. 42:13, Ez. 1:26 would
also qualify as dangerous, because they figure God in human form. W e shall see
that many of these are implicated in other descriptions of the heresy as well.
s
For a complete summary of the Rabbinic Doctrine of the "Two Aspects of God,'*
see Urbach, Sages, pp. 396-407.
4
40 THE EARLY RABBINIC EVIDENCE
Here the details of the argument are worked out. In the apocalyptic
vision ascribed to Daniel, two thrones appear in heaven, which imply
two different figures to fill them. After referring to this dangerous
idea, the midrashist has also inserted a specific remedy to the miscon-
ception that "two powers in heaven" are being described by Daniel.
In Dan. 7:10 scripture states that "a fiery stream... came forth from
Him" where the singular pronoun shows that only one personage is
present, although there may be two manifestations. 9
A further elaboration in MRI must also be explained. Ex. 24:10 f.
was quoted because Ex. 24:11b contained the proof that God was
merciful to the Israelites at Sinai. However, the midrash also makes
a special point of quoting Ex. 24:10b ("And the like of the very heaven
for clearness"), which is irrelevant to the argument that God is merci-
ful, the point of the proof-text. However, this biblical verse contains
an anthropomorphic description of Y H W H , (probably understood to
describe a glorious enthronement). I 0 That it contains another merkabah
(chariot-throne) description similar to Dan. 7:9 f. is perhaps of itself
enough to explain the reference. However, in this case, the midrashist
must also be alluding to other rabbinic traditions which explain how
God's throne could be both constructed of brick-work and be "the like
of the very heaven for clearness." This possible contradiction in the
deity's appearance is solved by assuming that when Israel was in
bondage, God's Shekhina or presence shared their fate symbolically by
resting on the brickwork, but when they were freed, His throne rested
on the clear blue heaven. ' l The redactor then must have been reason-
!)
The argument of the rabbis is not completely convincing for the text may only
be referring to one of the two figures at this point. In fact, the rabbinic argument
is characteristic of the method for combatting the heresy developed in the third
century by R. Yohanan. In chapter I we decided that it must be considered a gloss.
See pp. 27 and 121.
10
It can be hown that Dan. 7:9 f. and lix. 2-1:10 f. were seen together by early
interpreters. T.O. states that a throne (KRS 3 ) is present in the vision of God at
Ex. 24:10 f., a detail which Is missing in M T and LXX but can be supplied by
assuming the influence of other enthronement traditions. The detail could have been
supplied from Dan. 7:9 f. but more likely both lix. 24:10 f. and Dan. 7:9 f. were seen
in the light of Hz. 1 and Is. 6 which contain descriptions of the throne, resting on
a precious stone with a figure like a man sitting on it. The TJ declares that the whole
vision was mediated by the angel Michael whose name means "Who is like God*'
and who appears as a man.
11
In the MRI Pisha XIV, the following legend is recounted; Whenever Israel
is in bondage, the Shekhina is, as it were, in bondage with them; as it is said,
"and they saw the God of Israel; and there was, under His feet (the like of brick-
work) etc.," i.e., even as they were engaged in making brick during their bondage,
CONFLICTING APPEARANCES OF GOD 41
ing that, since the contention under discussion is that God's aspect
changed in the various visions He gave to man, the legend of the
Shekhina's change of aspect at Ex. 24:10 should be included as well.
The peroration at the end of MRI has also been expanded over the
version in MRSbY. It comprises a list of biblical passages which
combat the idea that two deities rule the cosmos, together with an
elaboration of the many aspects of God which, nevertheless, remain
descriptions of only one deity. As in MRSbY, it appears to be based
on Ex. 3:14, the revelation of His name. Although God may be viewed
in various aspects, there is a limit to how far one may go in ascribing
independent motives to His different hypostases. "<-
MRI, in effect, has defined more carefully than MRSbY what the
problem of "two powers in heaven" entails, by giving us three dif-
ferent texts from which the heresy can be derived: Dan. 7:9 f., Ex. 15:3,
and Ex. 24:10 f. Furthermore, it has identified the people who believe
in "two powers in heaven" as gentiles. In the final peroration against
the doctrine, it does not know about the reference to the River Anion
which was present in MRSbY and adds Is. 46:4 to the list of scriptural
passages which may be used as a corrective against the false doctrine.
MRI and MRSbY must have a sophisticated "legend" in common to-
gether with some independent development.
The last recension of these traditions, PR 21 (100b) is very late.
It records similar objections against "two powers in heaven" ascribed
so He had at His feet, the likeness of a brick, symbolizing His sharing of their
fate.) But when they were redeemed, it was, as the verse says, "The like of the very
heaven for clearness"—i.e., the brightness of the skies symbolizing God*s joy. See for
a complete presentation of the argument Goldin, Song, p. 127, who bases his well
argued suggestion on I. Levy, "Hin Wort über die Mikhilta des R. Simeon,'" p, 9 n. 1.
See also the rabbinic discussion in j . Suk. 4:5.
12 MRSbY introduces these thoughts as another interpretation (DBR D HR.) It also
makes the name of God a part of the explicit commentary by saying: The Lord is a
man. of war—(this means) He makes battle in Hgypt; the Lord is His name—He
battles at the sea and is the same at the Jordan and the same at the Arnon, the same
in this world and the same in the world to come, the same in the past and the same
in the future age. The passage, hence, has been further expanded by MRSbY to
include the events of the Arnon. (For description of saving events at Arnon see,
Tan B., IV, 126-27, Tan. Hukhat 19, Nu. R. 19:24, SZ 23-24, b. Ber. 59a-59b. Also
Ginzberg, Legends, III, p. 337 f. and VI, p. 116 f.) The proof-texts have been expanded
as well, by the addition of two more biblical quotations—Is. 44:6 between Dt, 32:39
and Is. 41:4 and also Is. 48:12 at the end. It is possible that each of the four scriptural
quotations is to be taken as a specific proof for the corresponding previous statement
of God's immutability. (See Goldin, Song, p. 128.) In the Bahodesh traditions,
the statements of God's constancy are present but the proof-texts are D t . 32:39,
Is. 46:4, Is. 44:6, and Is. 4 3:4.
42 THE EARLY RABBINIC EVIDENCE
i:i
Since God never directly says in scripture that He was at the Sea and at Sinai,
one must conclude that R. Hiyya is referring to an earlier midrash which resembled
the text in MRSbY or Mill or even to targumic exegesis of Ex. 3 since R. Hiyya
quotes in Aramaic. Note that the term "two gods" (ditheism) can be equated with
"two powers" (binitarianism) m this passage.
CONFLICTING APPEARANCES OF GOD 4.3
]i
See p. 159 f.
15
Jacob Neusner, Traditions of she Pharisees, claims that it was the academies
after 70 that developed the forms of recording traditions. This argument has much
merit and even if there are exceptions to his rule, it is best to earn them, instead of
conveniently assuming that any passage is early.
44 THE EARLY RABBINIC EVIDENCE
ui
There is evidence that other kinds of Jews identified traditions in different
ways. Philo identified the names and attributes in ways opposing to the accepted
rabbinic doctrine. See N. A, Dahl and A. Segal, "Philo and the Rabbis on the
Names of God," JSJ, forthcoming. There is certainly a case to be made that the rabbis
knew of an earlier doctrine, congruent with the Philonîc one and that they subsequently
fought against it.
17
Marmorstein, The Old Rabbinic Doctrine of God showed that the "old" phrases,
attribute of punishment (MDT H P W R C N W T ) , and attribute of good (MDT
HTWB) occur in discussions between R. Gamaliel II (80-110) and R. Akiba (110-
135). Midr. Ps. 119 f. cf., San. 81a, Makk. 24a. They are also used once by R. Simeon
b. Abba (290-320) (Gen. R. 9), although these latter may be a repetition of older
speculation. In some of the sayings of R. Meir (ARN 30) (135-170) and R. Simeon
b. Yohai (135-170) (Tan. 1:34), the older sayings are used, although in other tradi-
tions they also use the new terms, R. Jose b. Halafta (135-170) and R. Judah b. liai
CONFLICTING APPEARANCES OF GOD 45
(middle second century) were the first to use the terms MDT H D Y N
(attribute of justice) and M D T HRHMYM (attribute of mercy). He
suggested that M D T H T W B (attribute of good) and MDT HPWR C -
N W T (attribute of punishment), synonyms for the accepted doctrine
found in some tannaitic documents, were actually the technical terms
of an eariier doctrine and were discarded by the rabbis, under the
pressure of the gnostic menace. This much has been widely accepted.
He also suggested that the surviving rabbinic doctrine was not antique
and had been deliberately altered from an earlier one, out of polemical
and apologetic motives. He even tried to prove that traces of an eariier,
Philonic correlation of divine names and attributes were still to be
found in some rabbinic texts. For instance, he tried to show that R.
Akiba was unaware that "Elohim" could have the implication of
"judge." However, that conclusion is too hasty. The same passage may
be interpreted to indicate that R. Akiba was aware of the standard
H
doctrine. "• That would mean that the standard rabbinic doctrine could
have been developed even earlier than R. Akiba. What is more im-
portant, the orthodox doctrine was massively developed by rabbis like
R. Simeon and R. Meir only a few years after Akiba's death.
Now, since Marmorstein's time we have had to become more
skeptical of attributions to tannaitic sages. Though they are not neces-
sarily later, the attributions themselves cannot be the final proof of
a tannaitic date. So far, we know only that rabbinic use of "justice
(135-170) still can use the old designations for the two attributes, but the new terms
are also reputed to be in use by the same masters. These rabbis, then, are supposed
by rabbinic tradition to be the beginnings of the transition of the use of the new
terms (MDT H D Y N and M D T H R H M Y M ) . From this Marmorstein deduced that
the terms "attribute of mercy" and "attribute of justice" are no older than the middle
of the second century and are probably younger than that.
13
Marmorstein maintains that R. Akiba did not know that Elohim meant judge
because in Mekhilta Kaspa 1 (Mishpatim 19; H-R, p. 317 and Lauterbach III, p. 151)
he treats the name of God as holy. But he would have had to be aware of the issue
En order to have made such a ruling. So the opposite is the case. Furthermore, the
origin of the current vocabulary is even attributed to earlier sages than Marmorstein
thought. It can be seen in the sayings of R. Yosi Hagelili (Gen. R. 26:6, b. Sanh.
38b). In fact, some aspects of the tradition linking God's names and His attributes are
biblical. In Jonah 3:8 and 4:3, God's change of mind in regard to the punishment
of Nineveh is interpreted by means of God's interpretation of His name to Moses
in hx. 3-1:6: " Y H W H , Y H W H is a God merciful and gracious, longsuffering and
abundant in goodness and truth." So the interpretation of the names of God as related
to mercy is ancient. However the scripture is ambiguous enough to be used equally
by the rabbis or by Philo as a demonstration of their respective systems of interpreting
the names of God.
46 THE EARLY RABBINIC EVIDENCE
1!)
For more detail see N. A. Dahl and Alan F. Segal "Philo and the Rabbis and the
Names of God," ]SJ, forthcoming.
2« MDT HTWB - dynamis agathotëtos, M D T HPWR C NWT - dynamis kola-
stërhs. See p. 173.
CONFLICTING APPEARANCES OF GOD 47
~x b. Hag. Ma Tr. Epstein. Cf. also b. Sanhédrin 38a where other rabbis are said
to oppose R. Akiba. See also next interpretation of the verse in b. Hagigah where
Hleazar b. Azariah states that the two thrones are actually a throne and a footrest
(Is. 66:1).
Immediately before this midrash, the rabbis associate the description of the Ancient
of Days in Dan. 7:9 with the description of the young man in Song of Songs 5:11
and bring up the contradiction in appearance. They settle the contradiction by saying
that one manifestation is apt for the Lord sitting in counsel the next for the Lord
in war.
48 THE EARLY RABBINIC EVIDENCE
- - There are reports of rabbinic exegesis of Dan. 7:9 which grant the messiah
the title "Son of a Cloud" (See G. Vermes, "The Use of Bar Nash/Bar Nasha in
Jewish Aramaic" in M. Black, An Aramaic Approach to the Gospel and Acts. Also
H. Lietzmann, Der Meiischensohu (Leipzig: 1896), p. U. Other exegetes who lived
even after Akiba also interpreted Dan. 7:9 f. messianicaiiy, but the specific image
of two enthronements in heaven is no longer mentioned. See, e.g., M. Ps. 21:5 where
R, Berekiah (350-375) interprets the verse in Dan. to refer to "the king messiah"
and he attributes this tradition to R. Samuel (d. 254).
~:î Akiba is known for his doctrine of the political roie for the Messiah. He was
much criticized by later rabbis for having identified Bar Kokhba as the Messiah
(iVf. Ps. 60:9, 10). See Lam. R. 2;t where the anti-Bar Kokhba material is traced
to Judah the Prince. This ought to cast serious doubt on the scholarly opinion that
there were two, separate, messianic ideas current in Israel—one purely political and
native to Israelite thought, the second eschatological and absorbed from Iranian
thought. (See Mowinckel, He that Cometh). Furthermore, as we know from Qumran,
a given community could, in fact, beheve in more than one messiah (in this case, a
kingly and a priestly figure) each of whom functioned both politically and eschatolo-
gically. See M. Smith, "What is implied by the variety of Messianic Figures?" JBL,
78 (1959), 66-72. It is much more logical to assume that each community sought
legitimation of its historical situation and eschatological aspirations from the text
of the Bible. See Nils Dahl, "Hschatology and History in the Light of the Qumran
Texts," in The Future of our Religious Past, ed. J. M. Robinson, pp. 9-28. Viewed in
this light, the whole controversy between Judaism and whatever sectarians used this
verse would turn on the differing midrashic understandings of the identity of the
second figure enthroned in Dan. See p. 201. Apparently, R. Yosi's opinion did not cut
off such messianic interpretation entirely. It was the particular time of Akiba and
Yosi which uniquely felt that such Messianic idea were too dangerous to allow to
flourish.
'-* It should be noted that the vocabulary used here is not congruent with the
doctrine of God's mercy and His justice. Instead of R H M Y M , as we would expect,
we find the word S D Q H . Basically this word derives from the root meaning "straight-
ness," "righteousri'ess," or "justification," and, in. biblical usage, would be another
word referring to God's justice. In rabbinic texts, however, the word conventionally
means acts of charity, pointing to the fact that often justice was viewed to contain mercy
as well. The rabbis only separated the two terms "justice" and "mercy" when they
needed to make a point about their distinction.
CONFLICTING APPEARANCES OF GOD 49
-^ That the second figure in the Dan. 7 vision should be seen as the messiah
is not evident from the text. An angel would be far more likely candidate in any scene
taking place in heaven. Indeed, see J. J. Collins, "The Son of Man and the Saints of
the most High in the Book of Daniel," JBL, 93 (1974) who believes Michael is
meant. Gabriel is an equally likely candidate. For a discussion of the various apo-
calyptic groups and, of course, Christianity, which identified the "son of man" as
the Messiah, see p. 201 f. Philo did not often talk about the Dan. 7 passage and did
not identify any hypostasis of God with the messiah.
50 THE RARLY RABBINIC EVIDENCE
What other nation on earth is like Thy people Israel, whom God went
to redeem to be His people, making Himself a name, and doing for
them great and terrible things, by driving out before His people a
nation and its God?
26 See, e.g., Pisha XIV (I 113-115) and Sifre Behaalotekha 84, p. 82. The verse has
been traditionally understood to have omitted the phrases than can be supplied by
comparing it with 1 Chron. 17:21. This issue is quite closely related to that of the
early dating of the Shiur Koma literature. See Lieberman (118-126 of Scholem, Jewish
Gnosticism) who feels that the human appearance of God at Sinai was central to
the thought of Akiba and brings copious evidence to prove it. See below, n. 27 and
the works of Gruenwald,
CONFLICTING APPEARANCES OF GOD 51
it. Once it was clear that this divine figure who seemed to be God,
who carried His name, and who acted for God, could be called the
Shekhina or the Kavod and not an independent deity, the rabbis accepted
and expanded the tradition.
Thus it is not impossible that some of the tradition of the Mekhilta
can go back to the second century. Let us return to the Mekhilta tradition
for a moment to summarize what may be concluded. When all the
traditions which must be later than R. Akiba are removed from MRl,
we are left with an argument that looks rather like the argument
common to both MSbY and MRL The argument would serve to oppose
any repetition of the divine name "YHWH" which could be construed
as implying two independent deities. It would also oppose any iden-
tification of the two Hebrew names for God with two different inde-
pendent divinities. To be sure, the peroration that God will continuously
manifest himself ("He was in the past and He will be in the future")
is present In both recensions but it is listed as a separate tradition in
MRSbY and probably develops as an interpretation of Y H W H based
on Ex. 3:14. That leaves us with a kernel of traditions which associate
the heresy with the warrior figure in Ex. 15:3 or the unspecified
merciful figure at Sinai, together with the text of Dan. 7:9 f- The
Dan. passage does, in fact, supply two figures in heaven, one old and
one young. It seems likely, then, that the rabbis were opposed to any
tradition of a manlike figure in heaven, acting independently of God.
The biblical passages are important in themselves. Dan. 7:9 f. can
certainly be seen to allow for a "two powers" interpretation. Traditions
about the human figure ( YHWH's angel, but still God of Israel) seen at
Ex. 24:10 f. allow for "two powers" interpretations without reference
to other scripture. The same can be said for Ex. 15:3 (at least according
to MRSbY). It is therefore probable that the rabbis have put these
Exodus theophany passages together because some opponent also saw
a reason to connect them.
The traditions of intermediation also seem appropriate to other
rabbinic discussions attributed to the mid-second century. The problem
is to relate the "mercy and justice" issue with the "intermediation"
tradition. But the issues or mercy and justice are not necessarily related
to the intermediation tradition in any definite fashion. The connection
between "mercy and justice" and the "intermediation" is being made
by the rabbis, because both traditions depend on an exegesis of the
names of God, The rabbis are offering the mercy-justice exegesis as a
substitute for the heretical implications of the intermediation tradition.
CONFLICTING APPEARANCES OF GOD 53
Man is bound to bless (God) for the evil even as he blesses (God) for
the good, for it is said, And thou shall love YHWH thy God with
all they heart and with all they soul and with all thy might. (Dt. 6:4).
With all thy heart—with both impulses, thy good impulse and thy
evil impulse; and with all thy soul—even if He take thy soul; and with
all thy might—with all thy wealth. Another interpretation is: With all
thy might—for whichever measure (MDH) He measures out to thee
(MWDD), do give him thanks (MWDH) exceedingly.
This is a very interesting mishnah. It states the rabbinic and biblical
notion that God is the author of good and evil. It explicitly argues that
no personage other than God is to be acknowledged for evil. It brings
in Dt. 6:4 as the salient scriptural citation. Dt. 6:4 was exceptionally
32 Herford, p. 301.
3;
* Places where minim cannot mean Christians consist of places where minim are
described as disbelieving in resurrection of the dead. See e.g., j Ber. 9c
56 THE EARLY RABBINIC EVIDENCE
In the second century, this group would certainly have contained gentile
?A
Christians who are the best contenders for this charge, though they
are not the only group who could have been designated. We know
some gentiles were "God-fearers" but had not accepted circumcision,
thus invalidating their conversions in the opinion of most rabbis.
R. Hiyya b. Abba (290-320), a Babylonian amora who was contem-
porary with R. Levi and who immigrated to Palestine to study with
R. Yohanan, is portrayed as calling whoever would believe in two gods
"the son of harlot." Marmorstein suggested that either gnosticism or
Christianity may be implied by such a term. '^ Both Herford ?>r> and
Lauterbach ::7 felt that the polemic was occasioned by Christianity.
They argued that the reference to a son of a harlot is a stock denial
of the virgin birth. However, the Aramaic word for harlotry could be
associated either with the Hebrew word mm (for sectarian) or the
Hebrew root ZNH which could mean "to go whoring" which was
associated with sinful, Canaanite (i.e. gentile) religion. We know it
could be used with the sense of sectarian in the rabbinic period. 3 8
Hence, in the fourth century, the opponents could either have been
gentile opponents of the rabbis or sectarian Jews. There is no reason
to associate the heresy explicitly with either Christianity or gnosticism
on the basis of the term alone.
There is some more evidence to connect this argument with a rabbinic
polemic against Christianity. Elsewhere, M. Ps. 22 comments on "My
God, my God, why hast thou forsaken me?," which in its Aramaic
translation is supposed to have been Jesus' last words (Mt. 27:46).
The Rabbis say that the first "My God" refers to the Sea and the
second "my God" refers to Sinai. Since no other group found this
verse suitable, this is enough to infer that Christianity was identified
as "two powers" heresy, but the rabbinic charge of "two powers" may
not have been originally or exclusively used against it.
In these traditions then, gentiles or gentile Christians seem to be
the earliest recorded targets of the charge, probably because they were
most vociferous contemporaries when the text was fixed in its present
a-t
In fact, Justin Martyr uses similar arguments to portray the Christ. See Section
III, p. 221 f.
•'ïG Marmorstein, RGS, II, p. 103.
;ifi
Herford, p. 30-1
;i7
Lauterbach, Jesus, p. 549.
;î8
See b. A. Zar. 7a, where Prov. 5:8 is discussed. The passage in Prov. personifies
Wisdom and moral rectitude as a woman and compares her with "the strange woman"
who would represent moral folly, and is clearly described as a whore.
CONFLICTING APPEARANCES OF GOD 57
form. But we must also allow that where gentile Christians are involved,
Jewish Christians, hence Jewish sectarians, are almost certain to have
been their teachers. Nothing completely conclusive can be demonstrated
from the internal evidence. But one aspect of the heretical beliefs can be
of further use—the biblical passages which formed the basis of the
heretical exegesis. An examination of the use of biblical exegesis in
various Jewish sectarian groups of the first few centuries will yield
further information about the identity of the heretics in question. That
investigation will be carried out in Section III.
PASSAGE 2
Mekhilta Bahodesh 5
Rabbi Nathan says: From this one can cite a refutation of the heretics
who say: "There are two powers." For when the Holy One Blessed be He,
stood up and exclaimed: "I am the Lord thy God," was there any one who
stood up to protest against Him? If you should say that it was done in
secret—but has it not been said: "I have not spoken in secret," etc. (Isa.
45:19) ? "I said not unto the seed of Jacob" {ibid.) that is, to these alone
will I give it. "They sought me in the desert" {ibid.). Did I not give it in
broad daylight? And thus it says: "I the Lord speak righteousness, I declare
things that are right" {ibid.). so
R. Nathan's (ca. 135-170 CE.) argument immediately follows
passage 1 in MRI Bahodesh 5. Indeed, it assumes an exegesis of Ex.
20:2 for it is a further comment on the fact that only one God gave
the Law. At the giving of the Ten Commandments, he argues, no
other deity contradicted YHWH's statement that He is Israel's God.
Since He made this statement openly and was not contradicted, there
could be no other deity. R. Nathan uses further quotations from
Isaiah to show that the statement in Ex. 20:2 was spoken publicly
and openly. From this one may infer that the criticism on the part of
those who believe in "two powers in heaven" was that the God who
gave the Law acted secretly or deviously. This, in turn, suggests an
opposition between the two deities in the doctrine of the heretics.
It becomes possible to posit an opponent for R. Nathan who believed
that the God of Israel did something in secret as a scheme against a
higher God. There was only one kind of group in Palestine during that
time .that could hold such doctrines—the gnostics. R. Nathan's remark
may oppose gnostic sectarians, either of a Christian or a non-Christian
variety.
40
As Büchler has shown {Minim, p. 252), min must have referred also to non-
Jews at some point for arguments are ascribed to them which no* j e w who wanted
to maintain his relationship to the people Israel (of whatever interpretation) could
maintain. From a methodological point of view then, one has to assume that minim
are always Jewish sectarians, viewed as heretics by the middle of the second century,
unless they are specifically accused of anti-Israel propaganda.
CONFLICTING APPEARANCES OF GOD 59
PASS AG H 3
b. Hagigah 15a
Aher mutilated the shoots. Of him Scripture says: (Ecc. 5:5). Suffer
not thy mouth to bring thy flesh into guilt. "What does it refer to?—He saw
that permission was granted to Metatron to sit and write down the merits
of Israel. Said he: "It is taught as a tradition that on high there is no sitting
and no emulation, no back and no weariness." Perhaps God forfend!—there
are two divinities (powers). Thereupon they led Metatron forth, and punished
him with sixty fiery lashes, saying to him: "Why didst thou not rise before
him when thou didst see him?" Permission was (then) given to him to
strike out the merits of Aher. A Bath Kol went forth and said: "Return,
ye backsliding children" (Jer. 3:22)—except Aher. 2
T h e tradition is a late addition to the Babylonian Talmud. It reports
that Aher entered the pardes 3 and received a mistaken impression
1
For more recent discussions, Scholem, Major Trends, pp. 40-79; also Jewish
Gnosticism, and his articles in EJ. A good summary of scholarship on merkabah may
be found in J. Greenfield's introduction to III Enoch, ed., H. Odeberg. The outstanding
essay on the relationship between the Sinai theophany and merkabah speculation is
by Lieberman, Appendix D of Scholem's Jewish Gnosticism, 118-126.
2
Tr. Hpstein. See also JIÎ Enoch 16:2.
?>
The story of the pardes has been often discussed by commentators interested in
defining the nature of Jewish gnosticism or mystical practice among the rabbis.
AHER, METATRON, MERKABAH, THE ANGEL OF YHWH 61
about the events he saw taking place there. Whatever the original
meaning of pardes, the scene here is obviously the heavenly court with
Metatron depicted as sitting to write down the merits of Israel Ap-
parently being seated is more than an infringement of protocol, for
it is serious enough to give Aher the impression that Metatron is
enthroned as equivalent to God Himself, hence able to act inde-
pendently of God, Accordingly, the angels lead Metatron out to be
punished, demonstrating that he is susceptible to divine commands
and punishments, in no sense equal to God. Finally, the text claims
that the prophecy of Jer. 3:22 does not apply to Aher and that he will
be both unrepentent and unforgiven for getting an heretical impression
about Metatron.
In this well-known story, much is revealed about one kind of thought
to which the designation "two powers in heaven" was applied. There
are some strikingly unexpected turns in this story, which makes its
authenticity dubious and its purpose obvious. In the first place, Aher's
observation that Metatron's seated posture gives the impression that
there are "two powers" is not illogical. It stands to reason that divine
and exalted creatures seated in heaven are enthroned. The rabbis are
determined to refute the whole idea of heavenly enthronement by
stating that such things as "sitting" and other anthropomorphic acti-
vities are unthinkable In heaven. Yet we have already seen that the
rabbis are not reluctant elsewhere to talk of divine enthronement
per se or the seats of mercy and justice. Nor does Aher present his
observation as a challenge to the rabbis. He is horrified by it. "Heaven
forbid that there are two powers," he exclaims. 4 Furthermore, Meta-
tron, who is in no way responsible for Aher's assertion, and who
apparently had the right to be seated, is punished as an object lesson
for Aher. 5 In spite of this, Aher, whose statement at the beginning
The meaning of the term itself has been hotly contested. Those commentators who
suspect early mysticism to have been present define the term as synonymous with
heaven. Those who see the term to be originally non-mystical or philosophical and
only later mystical tend to stress that it is Greek loan word (paradeisos) and could
mean only garden, and, in fact, was quite often used in Epicureanism.
4
This is certainly a gloss occasioned by the rabbinic sensitivity to recording heresy,
even in the mouth of a heretic. For a more credible version of the tradition see III
Enoch J6:2. Of course neither recension should be viewed as ipssima verba of Aher!
5 "Fiery lashes" is the translation of PWLSY DNWR D which are circular plates
or rings heated and strung on a lash. See B.M. 85b, also Yom. 77a. Rashi here and
in the other places comments that bringing out fiery lashes is a way of threatening
excommunication. The punishment itself seems to be reserved for rebellious heavenly
62 THE EARLY RABBINIC EVIDENCE
creatures. Rashi senses the moral of the story for the Jewish community. It is a
heavenly warning against heresy.
« See Ecc. R. VII, 8 and Ruth R. 6:4 f. as weil as here, b. Hag. 12b f.
" See p. 9.
s
The following have all suggested that the pardes story involved philosophical
speculation (about materia prima usually) which was later misdirected into mystical
thought: Graetz, G/wsticismus, pp. 94-95, Joël, Blick, I, p. 163, Bacher, AT, I,
p. 233. See also Fischel, pp. 1-34.
0
Urbach, Scholem Festschrift, p. 12-18. David Haipern is studying the midrashic
and talmudic traditions in great detail in his dissertation at Berkeley. The parable
that Urbach finds at center of the pardes tradition may be found in j . Hag. 73c near
the bottom.
AHER, METATRON, MERKABAH, THE ANGEL OF YHWH 63
10
To be sure, he addresses himself to just this problem in the legends concerning
ben Arak. But his conclusions there are based on his previous argument that the
stories are late.
11
See Smith, Observations, where he argues that the theurgic magic in the so-called
Mithras liturgy is of a piece with the heavenly journey of Hekhaloth Rabbati and
hence the latter, which is not a talmudic report but an actual mystical book, may
go back to the third century.
' - See Scholem, Jewish Gnosticism, "The Four W h o entered Paradise and Paul's
Ascension to Paradise" where he traces mystical themes to Paul and II Enoch. See
also J. W. Bowker, "Merkabah Visions and the Visions of Paul," JSS, 16 (1971),
157-73; A. Neher "Le Voyage de Quatre," RHR, CXL (1951), 59-82; J. Neusner,
"The Development of the Merkabah Tradition," JSJ, 2 (1971), 149-60.
i;î
Ginzberg first promulgated this argument. He denied all historic worth to the
story because he thought Metatron to be a name otherwise completely limited to
Babylonian sources. See JE, "Merkabah." It is probable, however, that Metatron is a
rabbinic name first evidenced in Babylonia for a principal angel known by many names
in Palestinian sects. See below, p. 64 f,
64 THïï lîARLY RABBINIC EVIDENCE
heaven." We also know from the previous chapter that the earliest
isolatable heresy involved a divine hypostasis of God, somehow derived
by exegesis from the Hebrew names of God. The rabbis maintained
that such conceptions implied an independent will for one of God's
creatures, hence compromised monotheism. But there is no reason to
suppose that the heretics themselves would have said so. Here we
have a similar tradition involving a specific angel, Metatron. The con-
clusions of £he previous chapter make it seem likely, on grounds com-
pletely independent of Scholem or Smith, that angelic speculation
led to heresy in Palestine. But that is not all. There is further evidence
in rabbinic literature that opposition to principal angelic mediators is
quite early. For instance, the rabbis often emphasize that some o£
God's actions in behalf of Israel were accomplished "not by an angel
14
and not by a messenger." Judah Goldin shows that the formula was
applied to texts when the Hebrew syntax indicates that the subject
(most often God, but once Moses!) should be specially emphasized.
The contexts in which the formula occurs are five-fold: (1) God's
redemption of Israel from Egyptian bondage, (2) God's punishment
of Israel, (3) God's providing for Israel on its land, (4) God's
revelation of the law to Moses at Sinai, and finally, (5) Moses' in-
struction to Israel about the convenantai value of the sabbath. These
areas tend to show specifically where the rabbis were most concerned
to emphasize that God himself, (once Moses) and not an angelic
mediator, was responsible for the action. The comments by the rabbis
are quite consonant with the teachings of R. Akiba's pupil, R. Simeon
b. Yohai, perhaps even with R. Akiba himself ir> which were discussed
in the previous chapter. But the letters of Paul give us certain proof
that some jews of the first century thought that the law was given by
angels, an idea which would certainly have been opposed by the
1{
rabbis as well. >
It is not clear that the proto-Merkabah mystics would have identified
their candidate for mediating angel or messenger with Metatron. To
be sure, Metatron is an exceptionally important figure in later merkabah
'•t Judah Golciin, "Not by means of an Angel and not by Means of a Messenger,"
in Religions in Antiquity; Essays in Memory of E. R. Goodenough, ed. J. Neusner
(Leiden: 1968), pp. 412-424. The language itself is likely to be related to LXX
of Isaiah 63:9, or even a targurmc rendering of the verse. In its augmented form this
verse is a crucial part of the Christian discussion of the trinity. See Jaroslav Pelikan,
The Christian Tradition, I, p. 177 L
15
See above (p. 45 f.) and also Urbach, Sages, pp. 116 f., 156 f. Also see Lieberman
in Scholem, Jewish Gnosticism, p. 118-126,
10
See Galatians 3:13 f. and below p, 211 f.
AHER, METATRON, MERKABAH, THE ANGEL OF YHWH 65
2E
Odeberg, III Enoch, pp. 188-192. See also Scholem, Major Trends, p. 68 f. and
Jewish Gnosticism, p. A\,
22
Scholem's conclusions have been criticized by Lieberman (SQY C YN, 5699, p. 15)
who questions the manuscript evidence he brings and by Urbach, Sages, (p. 119, n. 5).
See Gruenwaid, Apocalyptic and Merkabah Mysticism, and Visions of Ezekiel
-3 Scholem's Jewish Gnosticism, p. 46.
AHER, METATRON, MERKABAH, THE ANGEL OF YHWH 67
- 4 Perhaps the relationship between Metatron and Daniei 7:9 as shown by the
quotation from the Visions of Ezekiel makes clearer the predicate of N C R or "youth"
for Metatron which Scholem finds so puzzling. It occurs in 3 Enoch 3:2 and is
referred to in the Shiur Koma in the phrase MSKN H N C R . The young figure in
Daniel 7:9 and Ex. 15:3 is never called NCR in rabbinic literature. He is called
GBWR, BHWR, 3 5 M L H M H , However the midrash does use the word Z Q N , old
man, explicitly to describe the Ancient of Days and the manifestation of God at Sinai,
Hx, 24:10 f. and fix. 20:2. Perhaps the missing step in the development is the use
of Ps. 37:25 which states: "[ have been a youth and now I am old." Thus the young
figure in the heavenly visions could be identified as N C R and the meaning of
"servant" (as in servant of the altar) would be derivative. One should also mention
that the contrast between God in youth and in old age was developed eloquently
by appeal to passage in the Song of Songs (see, <?,£., Hag. 14a), an extremely popular
book, and the Shiur Koma literature produced by Merkabah mystics. See Green, "The
Children in Egypt and the Theophany at the Sea: Interpretation of an Aggadic Motif."
The theme has also occurred in liturgy of later periods e.g. the Shir Hak-Kabod.
Some evidence that such an hypothetical reconstruction is in accord with the history
of the tradition comes from Yeb. 16b where Ps. 37:2 5 is put into the mouth of a
figure called the "Prince of the W o r l d " because "only he who was present during
the history of creation from its beignning to its end coul dhave spoken these
words." The Prince of the World, as we shall see, is another figure intimately bound
upin the traditions of Metatron and Michael and Y H W H . See p. 50 f., 60, 64 f., 189,
214. See also Lieberman in Scholem, Jewish Gnosticism, as noted.
68 THE EARLY RABBINIC EVIDENCE
Sanheclrin 38b
R. Nahman said: "He who is as skilled in refuting the Minim as is
R. Idith [MS. M: R. Idi] let him do so; but not otherwise. Once a Min
said to R. Idi: I t is written, And unto Moses He said: Come up to the Lord
(Ex. 24:1). But surely it should have stated, Come up to me Y—-'It was
Metatron/ he replied, whose name is similar to that of his Master, for it
is written, For My name is in Him. (Ex. 23:21). 'But if so, we should
worship him!' T h e same passage however/ replied R. Idi, 'says: Be not
rebellious against Him [i.e., exchange Me not for him.'] 'But if so, why is it
stated: He will not pardon your transgression?' (Ex. 23:21). He answered:
'By our troth [lit: we hold the belief] we would not accept him even as a
messenger, for it is written. And he said unto him, // Thy presence go not
etc (Ex. 33:15)." 25
to get into arguments with the heretics. -T One should refrain unless
one has the skill of R. Idi.
The demonstration of R. Idi's competence is exceedingly interesting.
Without naming the heresy, he describes a passage conducive to the
"two powers" heresy (Ex. 24:1). In that scripture, God orders Moses
and the elders to ascend to the Lord. Since the text says, "Come up
to Y H W H " and not "Come up to me," the heretic states that two
deities are present. The tetragrammaton would then be the name of a
second deity, a conclusion further supported by the lack of an explicit
subject for the verb "said 1 ' in the Massoretic Text. The high god can
refer to his helper as Y H W H because the helper is the same figure
of whom it is said, "My name is in him" (Ex. 23:20 f.).
Obviously this is another case of heretics believing in a principal
angel with divine perquisites because the Lord's name is in him. Now
we see how the name of Y H W H was associated with the mediator. 2S
The language is Babylonian Aramaic so the text ItseH can only be dated
to the third century with any surety. But the tradition must be based
on older traditions in apocalyptic or proto-Merkabah or proto-gnostic
texts where the principal angel has a theophoric name.
A most significant question is whether or not such ideas were ever
2ö
current within rabbinic Judaism. As we have seen, Urbach says that
they existed only on the outskirts of rabbinism and only at the end of
the second century. Scholem ;î0 says that they were central and early.
It is quite possible that our texts are too refractory for definite answers
but rabbinic opposition to extreme forms of speculation can be outlined
by looking at their arguments.
The defense against the heretical doctrine is based on a double
entendre. According to R. Idi, scripture should be understood as saying,
"Do not exchange me" (from M-W-R) rather than, "Be not rebellious
or provocative" (from M-R-H). Therefore, it is scripture itself that
offers the best caution against the heretical doctrine. We learn from
this defense that the heretics, in rabbinic eyes, were seen to confuse
an angel with God!
The heretic then asks why the Bible needed to say that "he will
not pardon your sins." As it is stated, the heretic is challenging the
rabbi to apply a rabbinic doctrine that each phrase in scripture must be
interpreted in such a way as to add its own specific piece of information.
Although this stylizes the heretic in a rabbinic idiom, the heretical
argument itself can certainly be discovered. More is at stake than a
heretic challenging a rabbi to observe the proper rules of rabbinic
debate. The heretic is saying that since the angel is described as not
pardoning the Israelites at this one place, normally the angel must
offer pardons. Hence, in heretical eyes, he has an independent share of
God's power. Furthermore, the last polemical remark of the rabbi
makes this implication clear. Were he only a messenger or agent—
parvanka ?>l—he should not be received.
2i)
Urbach, Secret Torah, throughout.
;i0
Scholem, Major Trends and Jewish Gnosticism, esp. p p . 20 f., 31 f., 43 f., 75 f.
;
U The word "parvanka" is a loan word from Mandaean and ultimately from
Persian where it meant a forerunner or messenger or the normal word for letter
carrier. In Hebrew, it seems to be used in the sense of messenger (Heb. sbctliah),
used in respect to both prophecy and liturgy to describe a representative of the people
or to the sovereign. Since shaliah was a readily available word, one wonders why the
rabbis did not use it, relying instead on the less familiar "parvanka." Odeberg suggests
that shaliah had already started to receive the connotation of savior, liberator, or
deliverer, as it has in Mandaic. But Odeberg is mistaken for parvanka also has
soterio'logical connotations in Mandaic, See NÖldeke, Man. Gram. 417, n. 1, for its
70 THE EARLY RABBINIC EVIDENCE
use in Kolasta and L. Guua, as a guide for the spirit when it leaves its earthly life.
Widengren ("Heavenly Enthronement and Baptism," Religions hi Antiquity, 566)
translates parvanka as "companion" because of its soteriological connotations and
remarks on the relationship to M. Ir. "Parranak." Another more probable reason for
using parvanka rather than shaliah is that the word "shaliah" had the legal status
of "agent" in rabbinic law. As an agent, a person acting for someone else should be
treated as if he were the person he represents. Some considered an agent as a partner
of the person that he represents, (B.K. 70a). In fact, there are accounts of "two
powers" heretics who thought that the second power was God's partner in creation
(see p. 11 1 f.). Accordingly, it was probable that the rabbis were avoiding the terms
which would explicitly validate the heresy in rabbinic law. It is also possible that
they used a word which the heretics themselves used to describe the second power.
That would mean that the heretics are similar to Mandaean gnostics, or to the group
who brought gnosticism to the Mandaeans. The rabbis did not employ the word
shaliah to describe the angel described in Ex. 23:20, but the Persian loan word would
be suitable because it contained the connotation of mediator without giving rabbinic
approval to the concept. For the concept of God's agency as used in the Gospel of
John to describe Jesus' mission on earth, see Peder Borgen, Bread from Heaven,
Supplements to NT, X, (Leiden: 1965) 158-164 and "God's Agent in the Fourth
Gospel," Religions in Antiquity, pp. 136-148.
AHER, METATRON, MERKABAH, THE ANGEL OF YHWH 71
might have involved the belief that the angel participated in God's
divinity by appropriating one of His names. It seems clear therefore
that some varieties of the heresy go back to the first century, even if
the rabbinic texts do not.
It is important to note that the two powers worshipped by the
heretics were complementary rather than opposing, as gnostic deities
were. On the basis of this evidence, we must conclude that the earliest
traditions which the rabbis opposed were of the complementary variety,
since we have no hint that the opposing variety of heretical traditions
(like the kind that R. Nathan may have described) had a similar,
ancient history. Because of this, we should be prepared to accept the
conclusion that the heretics, among whom Christians were certainly
included, would not have agreed with the rabbinic charge that they
were dualists. By the third century, which is the earliest possible period
of our text, the rabbis seem to be fully aware of the kinds of claims
that could be made about a "son of man" or Metatron or any other
principal angel. So they reject the idea of divine intermediaries totally,
except as dependent agents of punishment. In place of the "two power"
understanding of Ex. 23:20, they offer the opposing verse Ex. 33:15,
"If Thy presence go not with us, carry us not up hence," which they
interpret as Moses' prayer that God himself should always be Israel's
guide. 3 -
The final stage in the rabbinic argument against angelic mediation
may be found in Ex. R. 32:9 where it is recorded that wherever an
angel of YHWH is mentioned one should understand that the Shekhina
(i.e., God's presence) was manifested. The effect is to remove any
doubt that the manifestation of divine force can be separate from God.
Identifying the specific group about whom the rabbis were concerned
in this passage can not be successful. Scholars have answered the
question in a variety of ways. Friedländer a 3 erroneously saw the pas-
sages themselves as dating from the tannaitic period. In accordance
with that theory, he could regard the rabbinic opponent as a gnostic.
He then proposed that "Metatron" should be identified with a gnostic
;i2
Philo offers an interesting and "dangerous" exegesis of these verses in Quae.
Ex. II 46: When Moses was called above at the theophany on the seventh day
(Ex. 2-1:16), he was changed from earthly man to heavenly man. The gospel of John
(3:13) seems to contain a polemic against that idea. John says that the vision of
God's kingdom and the second birth from above are not brought about by ascent into
heaven to the son of man, but rather the heavenly man"s descent brings the vision
and the second birth. See Borgen, p. 146.
;::s
Friedländer, Gttost/c/smus, p. 103.
72 THE EARLY RABBINIC EVIDENCE
god, "Horos." Of course, this overlooks the important fact that the
rabbis (R. Aher and R. Idi), not the heretic, mention Metatron.
Further, there is no hint of gnostic opposition of deities in any of the
material. It seems likely that Metatron, chief of God's angels, who
acts as His messenger and representative but is never regarded as God,
is the rabbinic name for many mediators in heretical thought.
4
Herford ^ saw the heretical doctrine as belonging to the Christian
camp, which was in accordance with his general theory that ail minim
are Christians. He suggested further that the type of Christianity
involved would have to be the Jewish-Christianity outlined in the
Epistle to the Hebrews. There, the Christ is seen as the heavenly High
Priest "after the order of Melchizedek," who, in turn, is a kind of
supernatural mediator. This ignores the fact that the Epistle to the
Hebrews argues that the Christ, as Son, is superior to any angel.
Urbach :ir> also suggests that the opponent is a Christian. However he
does this only because he feels that Merkabah mysticism must be
excluded as a possibility during the tannaitic period. None are prepared
to say that a variety of phenomena fit the bill of particulars.
With the information and study which Scholem has brought to
the subject comes the most complete understanding of the opponents.
His study has made it clear that these traditions were quite generalized
and went through different phases in different Jewish sects. Nor were
reports of heavenly journeys exclusively confined to Judaism, as the
reports about Julian the Theurgist show. At first they were fairly
widespread in apocalyptic, mystical, and ascetic groups. In Jewish circles
they are always associated with theophany texts in the Old Testament,
the same texts we have been tracing. They were witnessed by Philo,
who, as we shall see, recast them as the logos and used them to describe
the rewards of the mystical ascent. But the traditions were also present
in the Qumran Community. :î,i There is no reason to doubt that R.
Yohanan b. Zakkai and his disciples, to whom the earliest Merkabah
traditions are attributed in talmudic sources, were familiar with some
:u
Herford, p. 285 f.
3ß The Sages, p. lL8f.
:î0
See Jonas Greenfield's prolegomenon to the new edition of III Enoch, ed.,
H. Odeberg for a fine review of the evidence linking merkabah mysticism with various
Palestinian apocalyptic traditions in the first century. See also G. Quispel, "The
Jung Codex and its Significance" in The Jung Codex, H.-ch. Puech, G. Quispel and
W*. L. van Unnik (London: 1955), pp. 35-78. See Lawrence Schiffman, "Merkabah
Speculation at Qumran: The C/ iQ Serekh Shiroth c O!at ha-Shabbat," Festschrift for
A. Altmann, forthcoming.
AHER, METATRON, MERKABAH, THE ANGEL OF YHWH 73
;!7
See Urbach, Secret Torab for an analysis of bow these apocalyptic traditions
ramified into the traditions now present as bent/tot in Hagigah, See especially N . A,
Dahl, "The Johannine Church and History," in Current Issues in NT Interpretation,
ed., Klassen and G. Snyder (New York: 1962), p. 124-142, especially 131 for the
impetus to see the roots of Johannnine Christology within Jewish traditions of the
visionary ascent to heaven, as witnessed in merkabah and Christian apocrypha like
"The Ascension of Isaiah." This work develops the observations of Odeberg in
/ / / Enoch and The Fourth Gospel.
:t8
It is difficult to tell how much of the later mystical ascent practice through
ecstasy was present in the earliest period. However, theurgic ascent practices can be
traced to the Julian the Theurgist (author of the Chaldaean Oracles) at the end of the
second century, and hence to his father, in the middle of the same century (See
Smith, Observations, H . Lewy, Chaldaean Oracles and Theurgy (Cairo: 1956) and
Oracles Chaldaiques, ed., des Places (Paris: 1971) and subsequently became quite
widespread throughout the Roman Empire. Whether earlier Jewish apocalyptic
heavenly journeys could have existed without such theurgic practices is a moot ques-
tion, but it seems to me to be quite unlikely that the literary traditions could circulate
without some basis in ecstatic experience.
CHAPTER FOUR
PASSAGE 4
1
Hagigah: when they were walking in the way.
2
Hagigah; If "heaven and earth" (alone) were said I would have thought that
"heaven" was the name of the Holy One Blessed be He. Now it says li0T the heaven
and °T the earth" (Gen. 1:1)—"heavens" the real heavens; "earth," the real earth.
Tanhuma: "In the beginning created God heavens and earth" is not written rather,
" 3 T the heavens and ^T the earth" to show the logic of the divine writ.
3
Tanhuma: R. Akiba said to him! For it is no empty thing for you (Dt. 32:47)
"If heavens and earth (alone) were said, we would have thought that THERE ARE
TWO GODS, rather ?T the heavens and 3 T the earth'—them and what is described
with them."
A CONTROVERSY BETWEEN ISHMAEL AND AKIBA 75
3
T the heavens is to include the sun and the moon, the stars and the con-
stellations, the 3 T the earth—to include the trees and the grasses and the
garden of Eden. 4
As the text stands, R. Ishmael is challenging the method by which
R. Akiba interprets scripture. R. Akiba was taught by Nahum of
Gimzo that every use of DT signifies an inclusion in. the meaning of
the text. 5 " 3 T the Torah"—one might hypothesize, would mean both
the oral and written laws, R. Ishmael, however, challenges the principle
with the first verse in scripture. But R. Akiba says that he does not
interpret the scripture to include or exclude anything here. Rather
the 3 T signifies only that "heaven" and "earth" are definite direct
objects of the verb "created," not the subject of "created." Hence, in
no way can one assume that "heaven" and "earth" are deities. R.
Ishmael replies that "This is no empty thing for you" (Dt. 32:47)
presumably meaning that the occurance of DT in this verse cannot
remain without special significance in R. Akiba's system of interpre-
tation or it would show a failure of that system. As he says, "If it is
an empty thing for you, it is because you do not know how to interpret."
The next phrase of R. Ishmael is ambiguous. Either he says (1)
3
T "the heaven already includes the sun and moon, stars and constel-
lations..." meaning that R. Akiba's system has to fail because "heaven
and earth" is already a synecdoche for all creation, or (2) he helps
R. Akiba's argument by offering an explanation which R. Akiba has
* The end of this quotation differs from Freedman order to convey the ambiguity
of the Hebrew. See Theodor-AI beck I, Ï2 for complete references.
r
> This is the Hebrew particle signifying the definite direct object which, therefore,
like a case ending, has syntactical vaiue but no lexical meaning. The verse in question
is Genesis 1:1 ("In the beginning, God created heaven and earth.") Because of the
Hebrew accusative particle °T, we know that "heaven and earth" are to be understood
as definite direct objects of the verb "created." If the Torah were written in ordinary
Hebrew, the sole function of the DT would be to point out this definite direct object.
But the kind of Hebrew that comprised the Torah is precisely the point at issue
between Ishmael and Akiba. (See Bpstein, M B W ° W T , pp. 521-526 and Bacher,
Aggadct der Tanmuten, I, p. 67 f.) R. Ishmael stated that D B R H T W R H KLSWN
BNY D DM, The words of Torah are like ordinary speech (lit.: is like the language
of men) (Sifre bashalah 112, San. 64b). This means that one should not pay any
special attention to the seemingly pleonastic words in the text or even things that
seem repetitious. R. Akiba, on the other hand, had learned his exegetical methodology
from Nahum of Gimzo, who taught that all particles, indeed, every jot and tittle of the
Torah held some special meaning which must be unlocked. In particular, conjunctions
employed in the Torah were intended to indicate the extension or limitation of its
provisions. Hence this system was called extension and limitation RBWY "WMYWT.
T h e particles KX, D P, were regarded as implying extensions while °K, MN, KK were
regarded as limitations.
76 THIï EARLY RABBINIC EVIDENCE
11
Sec e.g., Theodor-Albeck, ad loc.\ Marmorstein, Essays hi Anthropomorphism,
p. ! 1 interprets the paragraph based on an emendation. Marmorstein is most articulate
about how the passage should be read.., "The original text can be reconstructed by con-
sulting all the available parallels and manuscripts." Tanchuma ed. Buber, Gen., 5 f., has
the following reading in which R. Ishmael says: "The expressions (eth) in Gen. 1:1
surely cannot be explained according to your method; it is, however, the usual expression
of the text. R. Akiba says: 'Thou canst not explain it according to your method, cf.
(v. Deut. 32:47) but I can, for if the particle would be omitted one would think that
heaven and earth are Godheads; now, since the texts puts "eth," the teaching can be
derived that heaven and earth were brought into existence fully furnished with their
complete equipment.' It is noteworthy that the rendering of the verse from Deute-
ronomy, which is quoted here in the dialogue in the name of R. Ishmael or R, Akiba
respectively, is cited in the Palestinian Talmud four times in the name of one of the
younger Palestinian Amoraim, R. Mana, v. Peah 1:1, Shebiît 1:6, Shabbath 1:1, Sukka
4:1 and Ketuboth 8, end. This looks strange unless we take it as a later gloss. The
Midrash Abkir published by me in Dwir, pt. 1, pp. 127-128 enables us to render the
question and answer in this way: R. Ishmael asks what is the meaning of "eth" in the
verse? Surely no one of us will go so far as to suggest that heaven and earth are
deities or that man is God, or that God îs a lad? Therefore R. Akiba gives his inter-
pretation."
A CONTROVERSY BETWEEN ISHMAEL AND AKIBA 77
the other versions, and the Genesis Rabba text, which is supported by
all the other versions, has neither a direct mention of "two deities"
nor an additional marking that the speaker changes. If R. Akiba is
the author of the last statement, he speaks without a definite mark
7
of the change in speakers.
Whatever the solution to the textual problem and the structure of
the argument, the crucial point for studying rabbinic heresiology is to
understand what is meant by calling heaven and earth gods. The
heresy—or more exactly the faulty interpretation of scripture—was
puzzling to later rabbinic interpreters as well. In the Hagigah version
of the text, for instance, the dangerous doctrine is described as be-
lieving that "heaven" and "earth" are names of God. Only in the late
midrash, Tanhuma, is the heretical belief explicitly called "two gods."
The only thing immediately apparent from the Tanhuma evidence is
that the heresy of "two powers" was taken by later tradition as being
equivalent to saying there are two Gods—i.e., ditheism. Discovering
the character or practitioners of any hypothetical heretical doctrine and
its dubious relationship to "two powers in heaven" will not be easy.
It is sure that, despite the similarity in language, Tanhuma cannot
have the same heresy in mind as we have traced in the first two
chapters. Ishmael and Akiba can not be talking about "two deities
or powers hi heaven." Only one is in heaven,—or, more exactly, is
heaven. One suspects, then, by the time of the redaction of Tanhuma,
the charge of "two gods" or "two powers" had become completely
conventional and could be used against a variety of unorthodox
opinions, without the slightest deference to the original sources of
the heresy.
Heaven and earth were seen as deities by every polytheistic culture
surrounding Israel. Even Persian and Greek philosophy maintained
that they were divine. However, no culture around the Jews during
that period maintained that heaven and earth were the only two gods.
It is not likely that either polytheism or strict dualism is the doctrine
attacked in this passage.
The same tradition is attached to a variety of different scriptural
verses: Gen. 4:1, and Gen. 21:20, to name the principal ones. All of
7
The Soncino Midrash (in English) appears to understand the passage in this
third way. Freedman and Simon translate ^l? as "No" and see the sense of the
passage as follows: " N o ! DT the heavens is to include the sun and the moon, the
stars and the planets W 3 T the earth is to include trees, herbage and the garden of
Eden." Thus they see an implied change of speaker for this last paragraph.
78 THE EARLY RABBINIC EVIDENCE
8
The scholars who see this passage as referring to gnosticism are Joël, Blicke,
p. 169; Marmorstein, Essays in Anthropomorphism, p. 10.
A CONTROVERSY BETWEEN ISHMAEL AND AKIBA 79
!)
H. K. Weiss, Untersuchungen zur Kosmologie des hellenistischen und palästini-
schen Judentums (Berlin: 1966), p. 199 and Gilles Quispel, "From Mythos to Logos,"
Eranos Jahrbuch, 29 (1970), (pub. 1973, 323-340), now in Gnostic Studies, I, 163.
lû
Samaritan Liturgy, XVI, 1 (ed., Heidenheim, 25).
11
This will be discussed further in Section III. See p. 184 f.
80 THE HARLY RABBINIC EVIDENCE
Another context for the argument between Ishmael and Akiba over
the use of the " 3 T" is Gen. 4:1, the folk etymology for the name
"Cain." In this case there is a clear polemical setting for the discussion.
Cain's name is understood by means of the phrase: "With YHWH('b
help) I have acquired a son." However, the statement could also be
taken to mean "I have acquired a son through YHWH," or even, "I have
received YHWH as husband." Notice again that the presence or absence
of DT is not the issue; the meaning of the word is in dispute. Were the
D
T absent, the word would yield the sentence "I have acquired a man
of God," which is irrelevant for the argument.
i:î
There is a long history of exegesis about the offspring of Cain,
who were regarded, like Cain himself, as wholly evil. 14 Many heretical
groups came to be associated with Cain, is
N. A. Dahl has suggested a plausible theory of how heretical
groups came to be identified with Cain and also how the gnostic
group, the Cahutes, may have taken such a figure for their hero or
eponymous ancestor. Perhaps another example of understanding the
1(
tetragrammaton as one of the angels lies behind this passage. > In
orthodox eyes, the angel is no longer good. Rather he is Satan and he
is seen as the angel who commits adultery with Eve. Therefore, the
defensive tradition would be based on the idea that Cain is the first-
born of Satan, making his offspring anathema. Such a defensive argu-
ment was used not only by the rabbis but also by the evangelists (John
8:44) and the church fathers (Polycarp 7:1). In the evangelist's case,
the appellation is used against Jews: Whoever does not want to believe
in Jesus has Cain for a father instead of Abraham. The Jews who
are the target of this charge were accusing Jesus of being a Samaritan.
It is possible that the accusation of being an offspring of Cain was
first a Jewish charge against Christians (and others such as Samaritans)
Ui
Seth-Cain typology in Arm. Adam 63-64, W. Sol, 2:21, Post. 42, see also 35, 38,
Det. 78, see also 32, 68, 103.
11
JE, III, 493 ("demiurge"); Comp Gen. R. 8:9. Marmorstein, Unity, p. 483;
Background, p. 156.
ti5
See Aptowitzer, p. I I . In the fragmentary targum a tradition is recorded that
Cain said to his brother in the field "I believe that the world was not created with the
attribute of mercy." See also Aptowitzer, p. 12 and p. 122, n. 63, and A. J. Braver,
"The Debate Between a Sadducee and Pharisee in the Mouths of Cain and Abel,"
Beth Mikra, 44 (1971), 583-585 (Hebr.). More importantly in Tg. Ps. ]n 4:1, 5:3
and PRE 21, 22 Cain is not viewed as the offspring of Adam.
IS See Dahi, p. 72; based on Gen. 16:7-13; 22, 11-16; Ex. 3:27, Ki. 6:11-24; Zach.
3:1 f.; and Odeberg, III Enoch, Intro. 82 f., 90, 117, 119, 188-192.
82 THE EARLY RABBINIC EVIDENCE
17 Fug. SA.
IS Hippolyt. Ref., V, 16:9.
10 See p. 234 i.
20
Friedländer, Gnost/cismus, p. 19-24. Puech ascribes the Gospel of Tudas to the
Cainites. (Dahl, p. 80).
A CONTROVERSY BETWEEN ISHMAEL AND AKIBA 83
PASS AG I: 5
See now that I, even I, am He. (Dt. 32:39). This is a response to those who
say there is no power in heaven. He who says there are two powers in
heaven is answered: "Has it not elsewhere been said: 'And there is no God
with me! " And similarly (for one who says) "There is no power in it
(heaven) to kill or to revive, none to do evil or to make good," Scripture
teaches: "See now that I, even I, arn He. I kill and I revive" (Dt. 32:39).
And Again, "Thus says YHWH, the king of Israel and his deliverer, YHWH
of Hosts. 1 am the first, I am the last, and besides Me there is no God"
(Is. 44:6),
Another interpretation: "I kill and I revive" (Dt. 32:39). This is one
of four sure allusions to resurrection of the dead: / kill and I revive (Dt.
32); Let my soul die the death of the righteous; Let Reuben live and not die
(Dt. 33); After two days he -will revive us (Hosea 6). I might think that
death was by one (power) while life was by another. Scripture teaches:
"I wounded and I will heal." Just as wounding and healing is by one
(power), so is death and life by one (power alone), i
None escape my hand: N o father can save his sons. Abraham could not
save Ishmael and Isaac could not save Esau. Prom this example, I know
only that fathers cannot save their sons. From where do I learn that brothers
may not save their brothers? Scripture teaches: "No man can ransom his
brother" (Ps. 49:8). Isaac did not save Ishmael, Jacob did not save Esau.
Even if a man were to give all the money la the wodd, it would not give
him atonement, as it is said; "No man can ransom his brother... his ransom
would cost too much..." (Ibid.). A soul is dear. When a man sins with it,
there is no compensation.
1
Midrash Tannaim: Another interpretation; See now, I, even I, am He. R. EUezer
said: Why is it suitable for Scripture to say "I" twice? The Holy One, Blessed be
He said: '1 am in this world and I am in the world to come, I am He who redeemed
Israel from the hand of Egypt and I will redeem it in the future at the end of the
Fourth Kingdom," " And there is no God with Me: Every nation who says there is a
second god will I prohibit from eternal life, and every nation who says, there is no
second god, I will give them resurrection in the future. I will kill these and revive
those, as it says ul kill und I revive."
MIDRASHIC WARNINGS AGAINST " T W O POWERS" 85
2
Büchler, Minim, p. 267. Stauffer, TDNT, III, p. 99 associates the verses with
Marcion. See Marmorstein, EJ (1931), VII, 564.
3
Finkelstein, p. 367, Sifre Deut. 32:21 (pp. 320, 137a).
4
Midr. Psalms, I, 5 see Krauss, II, p. 4. See also Sifre Deut., pp. 221. Josephus,
Antiquities, 10, 278. Lieberman, How Much Greek? p. 130.
» Sifre Hum. 112, m. San. X i; m. Aboth II 14; b. San. 99b and 38b; Gen-. R.
ch. 19:1; Sifre Dt. 12, t. Sanh. XIII, 5b (17a); also A. Marmorstein, "Les Épicuriens
dans la littérature taimudique," REJ, LIV (1907), 181-193; Yafk. Zach., pp. 582,
86 THE EARLY RABBINIC EVIDENCE
Yaik. num., pp. 764 b. Hag. 5b, Gen. R. 8:9; b. Ned. 2 3a, Krauss, p. 107. See
Marmorstein, RGS, I, p. 52, and especially Urbach, Sages, pp. 73, 311, 588. Talmudic
uses of the word "apikoros" are compiled by S. Wagner, Religious Non-Conformity
in Ancient Jewish Life, (unpublished dissertation: Yeshiva University, 1964), 124-
144, A relationship between Epicurean philosophy and resurrection, providence, mercy
and justice is provided by Fischel, pp. 35-50.
0
Midr. Tan. expands the list to ten perîcopes in scripture but the additional
MIDRASHIC WARNINGS AGAINST "TWO POWERS"' 87
has simply assumed that the two paragraphs of the micirash (the first
describing atheists, dualists, etc., and the second describing resurrection)
are related. Probably he did so on the basis of m San. 10:1 which states
that all Israel has a share in the world to come, then defines those
sinners who have lost their portion. The Epicurean, he who denies
the divine origin of the Law, and he who does not admit that resur-
rection is prophesized in the Torah are all condemned by the Mishnah.
But since "two powers" heresy is not explicitly mentioned by the
Mishnah, the midrashic commentator wants to make sure that the
penalties for ditheism are clearly spelled out as well. He does so by
connecting the discussion of resurrection at the beginning of the
second paragraph in S/fre Dt. with the caveat against dualism at the end.
In the third paragraph of the Sifre passage, there are a few clues
to the identity of the unspecified sectarian groups, but there is no
implied relationship between the sectarian practices in any of the other
paragraphs. In the third paragraph the midrashist warns that fathers
cannot save their sons nor brothers save their brothers from retribution
for sin. That families will be split up on the day of judgment is a
standard motif appearing many times in the literature of the day and,
in fact, in many different religious systems throughout the world. U)
That no father can redeem his son and no son redeem his father is
a tradition present in other rabbinic writings as well. u Elsewhere,
the dictum is modified to allow that a son can redeem his father,
although no father can redeem his son. Rabbinic literature does record
that the patriarch Abraham redeemed his father, Terah. Ginzberg
feels that this type of statement is a warning against excess in the
doctrine of "the Merits of the Fathers," by which the goodness of the
patriarchs in the past was believed to atone for an individual's misdeed
in the present. »2 This suggests that some of rabbinic opposition in
this passage could be directed against abuse of rabbinic doctrines or
against the far more serious problem of the exaltation of Abraham
or Jacob found in apocalyptic documents and Pseudepigrapha.
There is no clear evidence, then, that the three paragraphs in this
section can be viewed as speaking about only one group. What unites
them is only that the rabbis use the quotation from Deuteronomy as
]t)
See vivid descriptions of heart-rending family separations in Mt. 24:40, Lk.
17:34, Quran 23:103, 80:33 f., b. San 104a, 4 Ezra 7:102, Bundahisn 31. Winston,
iranum Componenty 196.
11
M, Ps. 46:1, San. 104a, for example,
l
" Giruberg, Legends, V, 274 f., 419, see II Enoch 53:1.
£ * _ „ „ r t „> *
MIDRASHIC WARNINGS AGAiNST TWO POWERS 89
PASSAGE 6
Numbers 15:30
But the person who sins presumptuously, native or alien, he insults the
Lord.
13
Mielziner, Introduction to the Talmud (New York: 1969), p. 285. Hpstein,
NBW D "wT, pp. 625-633, esp. 628, where the passage in question from Sifre Dt. is
attributed to R, Jshmael's school although the majority of Sifre Dt. is from R. Akiba's
school. It should be noted that the schools mentioned indicate two differing redac-
tional principles but not any real connection to the academies of these two sages.
See EJ, "Midrashei Halakha," "PRB," " M X " and "Sifre Zuta" (M. D . H e r r ) .
A summary of critical opinion on each midrash will also be found there.
^ Sifre 120.
ii . _ n
MIDRASHIC WARNINGS AGAINST T W O POWERS 91
15
Bacher, Exegetische Terminologie, p. 149.
i(> Sifre 121.
17
E.g., Ker. 1:2, Sanh. 7:5, j . A. Zar. 3 (42d) as well as Tosefta and Targum
on Kings ad loc, (Sperber, v. 2, p. 310).
92 THE EARLY RABBINIC EVIDENCE
18
Though this reading testifies to the outcome of the dispute, other places in
tannaitic literature show that the dispute continued for some time before the authorita-
tive ruling was made, for R. Akiba's position on the question is often remembered.
As the tradition developed, other closely associated traditions became included and
added to the confusion. In Sifre Zuta, for instance, the etymology of G-D-P is taken
as proof that the meaning of the reproach is idolatry. The proof rests on what must
have been an expression in common usage. "After doing something to the bowl,
a man has scraped it so clean that nothing remains." This self-defeating process is
compared to idolatry, but neither the vehicle nor the tenor of the comparison is
completely clear.
First the vehicle of the metaphor; Horowitz suggests that the text should be amended
from NTR to NTT so that the phrase would mean, "after receiving the bowl."
Lieberman (Sifre Zuta, p. 5 n. 12) takes issue, saying that the correct emendation
is to N C R (on the pattern of m. Kelim 28:2) which then would make the metaphor
to empty the pot by means of stirring it and, in the process, scraping it out of
impatience. Licberman's emendation is the most carefully reasoned.
Other recensions of the tradition have tried to clarify the problem vis-à-vis the
tenor of the metaphor. In the Sifre to this passage, the same difference of opinion is
mentioned as an issue between R. lileazar ben Azariah (T2) and Issi ben Akabiah
(T5 ! ) . The earlier sage says that it is as if a man said to his compatriot "You scraped
the bowl and nothing remains of it.'* Both seem to be implying that the damage was
done in the process of emptying. In j . San, 25b Simon b. lUcazar (T5) is quoted as
saying that the MGDP and the idolator scrape out everything and don't leave a
commandment. He allows two different categories of sinner, MGDP and idolator,
but sees that the etymology implies only that both violate all the commandments.
In b . Keritot 7b each of the two etymological explanations are split up on corresponding
sides of the debate about whether M G D P means idolator or blasphemer. The rabbis
here report that lilazar b. Azariah was understood to say MGDP is one who scrapes the
dish and does not impair it while R. Issi said M G D P refers to one who scrapes the
dish and does impair it. Then the talmud goes on to say that R. F.Iazar b, Azariah
meant the passage to refer to those who worship idols while Issi and some other
sages as well said that the phrase referred to blasphemers. According to this tradition
the basic metaphor is as follows: Even if one may still believe and recognize the
supremacy of the creator (a much more sophisticated understanding of the worship
of eikons than the rabbis usually evince), when one has committed blasphemy, one-
has deprecated the creator himself. Blasphemy then becomes the more severe crime in
the eyes of the rabbis, though both blasphemy and idolatry were equally severe in
point of law. Jt seems probable then that this passage comes from a time when
Jewish idolatry was not a problem and the rabbis wanted either to emphasize the
crime of blasphemy or explain some practice as being less harmful than blasphemy.
('«...,. ^ „ , • , , „ , . . « „ " <•%-)
MIDRASHIC WARNINGS AGAINST TWO POWERS 93
and the penalties refer to both crimes. The rabbis seem to be saying
that the people who sin presumptuously include either those who in-
tentionally deny the authority in heaven or promote "two powers in
heaven/' whether they be part of Israel or outsiders. Atheism and
dualism were linked in this verse to apply the penalties of idolatry to
both. They were both seen to be perverters of the truth of the Bible
and could be discredited with the same scriptural reference.
In passage 5, the previous anthology of heresy, it was discovered
that more than one group was condemned in the passage and that
"two powers in heaven" was only one of the many. Not all doctrines
in that passage could then be applied without scruple to those who
believed in "two powers in heaven." Any of several different groups
of people—Sadducees, Samaritans, gnostics, Christians—might be im-
plicated if the second paragraph, which concerned resurrection, could
be taken as relevant to "two powers." If the third paragraph about the
redemption by various relatives were also describing the "two powers"
heresy, then any group which believed in the exaltation of its hero or
patriarch could be implicated.
The next logical step is to compare passage 5 with passage 6 and
ask if any of the groups in passage 5 could have been opposed, charact-
erized and punished by the rabbis as idolators or blasphemers. Such an
exercise can only cut down the logical possibilities to the strongest
candidates, not yield a firm rejection of any group or a firm identifica-
tion. But a determination of the strongest candidates is a relevant
consideration.
The Sadducees are not prime candidates, for they do not appear
to have been opposed by the Pharisees in those terms. The accusation
is probably conventional. The Samaritans, however, were charged with
both crimes. The idols of the Samaritans were mentioned in 2 Kings
17:30-31. Accordingly, Sanhédrin 63b informs us that the Samaritans
continued to worship the gods of their native lands, even after their
conversion to Judaism. Those from Babylon worshipped a hen, the
Cuthians a cock, those from Hamath a ram, the Avvites a dog and an
ass, the Sepharvites the mule and the horse. The Samaritans are even
said to have fashioned images of Jacob and Joseph to whom they paid
19
divine honors, a particularly interesting fact in view of the rabbinic
warning against reliance on forefathers for salvation. Samaritans are
also accused of blaspheming God—as, for instance, in j . San. 25d
20
See J. Purvis, The Samaritan Pentateuch and the Origin of the Samaritan Sect
(Cambridge, Mass: 1968). Also sec M. Smith on Alt and Montgomery's view of
Samaritanism in Palestinian Parties and Politics that Shaped the O.T. (New York:
1971), pp. 193-201. See especially J. Possum, dissertation Utrecht.
^ Haer 55:6.
2
- See Ginsberg, Legends, V, 226. Also see pseudo-Eupolemus in Euseb. P.E. 9,
17, 5 where the holy city of Melchizedek is identified with Har Garizim instead of
the usual Salem or Jerusalem. Epiphanius attributes the Shem-Melchizedek identifi-
cation to the Samaritans while the Jews declare Melchizedek to be the son of a
prostitute probably on the basis of the tradition that he was "without mother, father
or genealogy." This report is particularly relevant when one remembers that "son
of a prostitute" was also used to describe "two powers" heretics. See p. 54, See
J. Fossum, dissertation Utrecht, for Samaritan demiurgic traditions.
23 E.g., T. Levi 17:7. See p. 197, n. 31.
MIDRASHIC WARNINGS AGAINST "TWO POWERS" 95
'-•} In the introduction, various means available to the rabbinic community for
controlling deviance were discussed (see p. 6). Contemporary research on this
subject has grown more wary of reading rabbinic excommunication—NDWY and
HRM—into historical descriptions before the third century, Here, in traditions which
must be later than the third century in their present context, the rabbinic modes of
excommunication are not mentioned either. Rather the minim who believe in "two
powers" were said to be worthy of KRT, extirpation. This suggests that rabbinic
excommunication was reserved for offenders who still viewed themselves as part of the
community. Crimes worthy of extirpation would include not only blasphemy and
idolatry, as we have already seen, but also magic, sorcery, and "leading astray."
There is no way to tell whether this association in Sifre to N u . 15:30 was made for
polemical effect, to show the community how bad the heresy was, whether it reflects
theoretical, legal precedent, or the results of actual cases. It seems most likely that
these midrashic traditions reflect accusations alone. According to Christian texts,
such charges were made by the Jews. T h e N e w Testament, which tends to look for a
Jewish religious charge against Jesus rather than a Roman, political one, claims
that Jesus and Stephen were executed for blasphemy. Church fathers attest that Jews
called Jesus' miracles sorcery while the New Testament itself may be sensitive to
the charge (e.g. Mark 1:23 f., 5:7 f., 7:32 f., 9:23 f.). liven so, such traditions do
not necessarily reflect actual Jewish reactions to Jesus, rather have been taken by
Jews and Christians alike through the ages as descriptions of the events. Therefore
Unking groups like Christians with KRT is not illogical. The punishment of KRT
is extremely elastic and variable. In different forms, different periods, and under
different situations, it might entail the death penalty or, as is the far more normal
interpretation, death at the hands of God, who would cut off the life of the offender
before his appointed time.
CHAPTER SIX
MISHNA1C PROHIBITIONS
AGAINST UNORTHODOX PRAYER
Like the tannaitic midrashim, the Mishnah has preserved various
traditions related to ''two powers" heretics. The Mishnaic evidence can
he dated to the late second century for sure, but, like the midrash,
the Mishnah has been edited in such a way as to obscure the exact
relationship between "two powers" heresy and the sectarian practice it
describes. The rn'ishnayot describe relevant heretical practices under the
rubric or forbidden prayer. Various unacceptable prayers and practices
described in the Mishnah arc ascribed to "two powers" heretics by the
amoraim, so we can only be sure of the presence of a named heresy
in the amorale period after the codification of the Mishnah. Clearly
the heresy itself and exegesis of the dangerous scriptures on which it
depended were earlier than the end of the second century.
The identity of the opponents in the tannaitic tradition is more
obscure once the amoraic term "two powers" has been removed. The
tannaim are concerned with some repetitions in prayer and with various
heretical concepts of justice, goodness and mercy. By the end of the
tannaitic period, these issues were associated with the "two powers"
polemic. In passage 1, we saw that it was the rabbis themselves who
made the association. They offered an exegesis of the names of God
which emphasized his qualities of justice and mercy counter to, and
in place of, an heretical doctrine which apparently hypothesized two
different visual manifestations of God. These passages seem to show
that the heretics themselves were quite concerned with the problems
of mercy and justice.
PASSAGE 7
Mishnah Berakhot 5:3
He who says: (in a prayer) (A) "Even to a bird's nest do your mercies
extend" or (B) "May your name be remembered for the good" or (C)
"We give thanks, we give thanks"—is to be silenced.
Mishnah Megillah 4:9
(D) He who says: "May the good bless you."—this is the manner of sec-
tarianism.
MISHNAIC PROHIBITIONS AGAINST UNORTHODOX PRAYER 99
2
Birnbaum, p. 91.
•" Sotah 40a and j . Ber. 1:5 (3d) Elbogen, p. 58.
1
This reference was brought to my attention by Jonas Greenfield, who also
remains skeptical of the identification. It comes from Jacob Licht, The Thanksgiving
Stroll: A Scroll from the Wilderness oj Judaea: Text, Introduction, Commentary and
Glossary [In Hebr.] (Jerusalem: 1957), p, 161.
3 1 Q H XI, 3.
MISHNAIC PROHIBITIONS AGAINST UNORTHODOX PRAYER 101
0
Hduard Lohse, Die Texte aus Qumran: Hebräisch und Deutsch (München: Î971),
p. 152. He suggests the following translation: ich preise dich, mein Gott. Denn du
hast wunderbar am Staube gehandelt und am Gebilde von Lehm dich überaus herrlich
erwiesen.
7
D/dache, IX, X. tr. Lake, p. 32 3.
s
See, for example, Jeremias, The Eucharistie Words of Jesus (New York: 1966),
p. 255 f.
102 THE HARLY RABBINIC EVIDENCE
•] b. Ber. 6b, tr. Epstein. The expression for "two powers" here is K D W BR. Some-
thing appears to have been left out of the text. Probably the expression was K D W
BRY ^LHYN or possibly K D W BRY^YN (two creators!). This raises the possibility
that the term "two powers" might have been used as a euphemism for a stronger
term. At any rate, it shows that the older terms for the heresy could have been used
even after the term "two powers" became virtually standard in referring to phenomena
of this sort. I have altered Epstein's translation to suit the context.
MISHNAIC PROHIBITIONS AGAINST UNORTHODOX PRAYER 103
god and his supporters, once they ascend to heaven, are called "the
good." U) Of course, we know if this group from a Greek report, but
we do not know whether they or their predecessors or others like
them could have expressed their prayers in Hebrew, In that case, the
charge of "two powers in heaven" brought by the Palestinian rabbis
would have been occasioned by a gnostic system. 11
(A) and (B)
The other two heretical phrases have no articulated connection to
the heresy of "two powers in heaven" but they may be implicated by
being grouped by a redactor with heretical prayers that do. We already
know that arguments about the justice and mercy of God were brought
into rabbinic polemic by the middle of the second century. This is
additional evidence that the tannaim were interested in stressing God's
authorship of both mercy and justice.
and his nest, do Thou have pity and mercy on us!" Abaye points out
correctly that the benediction, as admirable as it may seem, is none-
theless to be forbidden because of the tannaitic precedent. This points
out that the ruling against this benediction was enforced even when
the amoraim were hard pressed to discover the justification.
We thus have no real evidence from the explanations of the amoraim
that they knew the actual historical situation of the tannaitic decree.
It seems likely that the original argument was over some aspect of the
doctrine of God's mercy and may even, as R. Yosi b. Zebida states,
have to do with the emphasis of God's aspect of mercy when He must
be understood as master of both justice and mercy. The amoraim's
perplexity about the severity of the ruling ought to alert us to the deep
tannaitic concern to attribute both justice and mercy to the one God.
13
Soncino Meg. p. 149.
^ Quod Omn. Prob. 84. Moore, Judaism, I, 364, n. 3. Lehmann (REJ, 30 (1895),
180 f.) suggested that our mishnaic tractate was meant to counter Essene, (HSWNYH)
beliefs. Since then more of the Essene type of dualism has become known from the
Qumran texts. Furthermore, the identification of Essenes with HSWNYM is un-
founded.
15 E.g., I QS 2.
i (i Quispel, "Christliche Gnosis und jüdische Hétérodoxie," ET (1954); "Der
gnostische Anthropos und die jüdische Tradition," Eranos, 22 (1954), p. 201.
106 THE EARLY RABBINIC EVIDENCE
and evil, justice and mercy were being discussed constantly in the
environment around the tannaitic Jewish community, as we discovered
even in the first passage about "two powers.1'
The heretical doctrines have some congruence with the heresies
described together with "two powers in heaven" in the midrash. For
instance, there may be some relationship between ( B ) , ( D ) and the
heretics of the midrash who deny that God has the power to do either
good or evil.
The relationship to the question of God's attributes of mercy and
justice is even more interesting. In the four heretical benedictions
brought together in this place, problems of dualism, good and evil,
justice and mercy are all combined. (B) and ( D ) are definitely involved
with some heretical understanding of God as the source of good and
evil. Some heretical understanding of justice and mercy is definitely
involved in ( A ) . (C) seems to be related to ditheism, but not neces-
sarily to opposing dualism. Rather it seems to imply a complementary
ditheism where both deities could be expected to listen to psalms o^
praise. One way to explain the assembling of various disparate texts of
this sort and understanding them together is to assume that, whatever
their separate origins, they were all viewed together by the rabbinic
community at the end of the second century.
It is certainly true that concepts of God's justice and mercy were
discussed in Judaism by Philo and even earlier. But the rabbinic evidence
allows us only to date reports to the late second century when Mar-
cionism, gnosticism, apocalypticism, and Christianity could all be seen
together. This would correspond to the phase of traditioning in passage
I and 2 ( M M , MRSbY, PR) when the doctrine of God's justice and
mercy became tied into an independent exegetical argument against two
heavenly figures.
One further relationship between the development of liturgy and
the charge of dualism may be found in a later gemara:
What benedictions does one say [in the morning] ? R. Jacob said in
the name of R. Oshaya: "[Blessed art Thou] who formest light
and createst darkness." Let him say rather: "Who formest light and
createst brightness"?—We keep the language of the Scripture. If that
is so, [what of the next words in the text]. Who makest peace and
createst evil: do we repeat them as they are written? It is written "evil"
and we say "all things" as a euphemism. Then here too let us say
'brightness* as a euphemism!—In fact, replied Raba, it is in order to
mention the distinctive feature of the day in the night-time and the
distinctive feature of the night in the day-time. It is correct that we
MISHNAIC PROHIBITIONS AGAINST UNORTHODOX PRAYER 107
i" Ber. l l a - b .
1S
In suggesting this substitution the questioner has relied on the use of an antonym
by way of completing the euphemism. This common practice, as e.g., calling a blind
man SGY 3 N H W R , appears to us to be an oxymoron but in its context was apparently
a perfectly acceptable euphemism.
i9
See, e.g., Finkelstein, "La kedouscha et les benedictions du schema," REJ, 95
(1932), 21.
108 THE EARLY RABBINIC EVIDENCE
The change was carried out to emphasize that one God created ail things,
both day and night, both light and darkness, both good and evil. This
softens the theological problem raised by calling God the creator
of evil and may indicate opponents who charged that YHWH was
solely a good or an evil god.
CHAPTER SEVEN
1
Tr. Danby, p. 388, with modifications. See also Ex. R. 29:2 and Dt. R. 2:13 also
p. J21 f., 137 f.
110 THR EARLY RABBINIC EVIDENCE
the Mishnah includes several other traditions on the subject. Ail men
are said to have one father to keep anyone from saying that he comes
from better stock. - Also, men have one father, so that the heretics
cannot say that there are "many powers in heaven." From these two
brief statements, it is impossible either to tell the identity of those
heretics who expressed such a doctrine or to define their relationship
to the "two powers" heresy. It is impossible even to define their
relationship to Adam speculation.
The brief comments in the Mishnah are discussed at length in the
gemara both on the subject of Adam and on the issue of heresy. Nor
are the two themes completely separate subjects, for we know from
external sources that Adam speculation was a great part of heretical
beliefs. Many of the legends reproduced in this place are interesting
but not immediately relevant. We shall have to come back to them
later. First, we must investigate legends which specifically clarify the
refractory text of the Mishnah.
How does one progress from the idea that more than one man was
created to the idea that there are many powers in heaven? One answer
would be as follows: The Mishnah suggests that if the world's peoples
were descended from different ancestors, there would be constant dis-
cord in the world. One could extrapolate from that statement to the
idea that many different first men would imply that many different
gods made them. This is the route taken by some rabbinic commen-
:i
tators to explain the connection. It is easy to see how traditional
commentaries come to this conclusion by combining the two traditions
of the gemara, but the gemara itself lists them separately.
The gemara develops the idea of the Mishnah in quite a different
way, while adding some new material in order to make a short anthology
of beliefs about Adam. It says:
Another answer is: for the sake of the righteous and the wicked that
the righteous might not say: Ours is a righteous heredity and that the
wicked might not say: Ours is a wicked heredity.
- Philo seems to argue that there were two Adams {Leg. All. 1:31, 53, 55), one
heavenly and one earthly. Elsewhere he says that the good have Seth for a father,
while the evil are the progeny of Cain. (Post. 35, 33, 42, -13, 45; Det. 32, 68, 78, 103;
Fug. 64.) But there is considerably more Adam speculation in heretical and gnostic
literature. See Urbach, Sages, p, 180 f. and especially Hans-Martin Schenke, Der Gott
"Mensch" in der Gnosis; Ein religions geschichtlichen Beitrag zur Diskussion über
die paulinische Anschauung von der Kirche als Leib Christi (Göttingen: 1962), See
also J. Fo-ssum, dissertation, Utrecht.
3
See Bertinoro, ad loc, for instance.
a ~,-..,.~.,,. „„„,..„,.,'»
MANY POWERS IN HEAVEN I1 1
The tradition explains that Adam was created on the sixth day in order
to serve as a defense against the heretical idea that Adam was one of
the creators. Of course, Adam participated in creation by naming the
animals, but the rabbis want to make absolutely clear that Adam could
not create by pal; la no sense was he to be considered an independent
power or demiurge. This argument must have been aimed at a doctrine
which gave divine status to Adam. In that case, the heresy should pro-
perly be considered "two powers" rather than "many powers." Since
the description appears in the Tosefta, it also must be older than the
other "many powers" discussions among the rabbis.
1
Tosefta San. 8:7.
112 THE EARLY RABBINIC EVIDENCE
of man in His image (and uses a plural form), was an issue as early
as Philo. 9 Plainly at issue is a "two powers" heresy in which Adam
is viewed as a second creator.
10
No more stories here describe Adam as explicitly divine. But
many other stories attribute superhuman characteristics to Adam. Such
tales are gathered in Sanhédrin 38 f., the amoraic discussion of San-
hédrin 4:5, after the traditions we have just discussed. No doubt, they
were all gathered in that place by the amoraim because of the subject
of Adam speculation. Immediately thereafter, the rabbis feel free to
indulge in speculation, as long as they avoid suggesting that Adam
is an independent divinity. R. Meir implies that Adam represents all
creation by saying that the dust to make him was taken from every
place on earth. R. Yohanan gives a time-table for the various stages
of the process of creating him on the sixth day. R. Judah quotes Rab's
story that God consumed various companies of angels because they
questioned the importance of creating man, knowing his proclivity to
sin. u When the men of the flood began to sin, the angels again asked
why God bothered with man. His response this time was to quote a
verse about His immutability from a passage already familiar in com-
batting heresy: "Even to old age, I am the same, and even to hoary head
will I tarry" (Is. 46:4). This time, one assumes that the verse is
;
> See J. Jcrvell, Imago Dei (Göttinnen: I960); Kleinknecht, "liikon" in TDNT\
F, W. Ehester, Eikon 'nn Neuen Testament, 3 958. Also Urbach, Sages, p. 180 f.; M.
Smith, "On the Shape of God and the Humanity of the Gentiles," in Religions in
Antiquity, pp. 315-326; R. McL. "Wilson, "The Early History of the Exegesis of Gen.
1:26," Studia Patristica, 1:1 (1957), 420-437.
10
In one of the versions of K. Simlai's discussions with heretics who ask him
whether more than one power created the world, he tells them to ask the first man,
who will testify that God has done it (See p. 126 f.). A possible implication from this
tradition is that the creation story, when read correctly, will counter the arguments of
heretics who derive either two gods or two creators from it. Jarl Fossum has also .
suggested the relevance of Gen. K. 21:5 where Adam's coming to knowledge is
described as becoming like the angels (Gen. 1:22). See Theodor-Aibeck, I, p. 200,
n. 6,7. Of course, in these traditions it is Adam after the Fall who is described as
divine (as Gen. 2:22 allows). These traditions clearly illustrate the rabbinic inter-
pretation of the plurals of majesty as God speaking to His heavenly court. See p. 143,
the previous notes and the dissertation of Jarl Fossum (Utrecht: 1978) for further
details on Adam speculation. Especially interesting in this regard is Philo, The Life
of Adam and Eve, The Cave of Treasure 2:12-3:2 and the Testament of Abraham.
11
Interestingly enough, the angels share in the creation of man in this story,
explaining the plural "Let us make man" etc. (Gen. 1:26) as due to God's conver-
sation with angels. This tradition is, hence, properly dated together with the amoraic
tradition which resemble it. See p. 143 f.
l 1
^ THE I'ARLY RABBINIC HVIDUNŒ
' - This is another cast of the rabbis using a figure important to some heretics
to show u p the error of the heresy. In this sense it resembles the Aher-Metatron
traditions. See p. 60 f. and p. 112.
i:i
See p, 238 for Marcion's interpretation. Also p. 253 f.
14
See Con], 146 and Leg. All. i 43, where logos and wisdom are equated. See
also W i s d o m of Solomon 7:25 f. which may be an example of some traditional Jewish
ideas Philo was using. Already in the Greek translation of Gen. 1:26, "the image"
may be understood as an entity all its own. Adam and the logos are identical because
they are both the image of God. See p. 173 L, 184 f.
15
Note that any correlation between the primal man and a savior seems first
attested in Paul who sees the Christ as remedy to Adam's sin. Robin Scroggs, The
Ldst Adam: A Study in Pauline Anthropology (Philadelphia: 1966).
"MANY POWERS m HEAVEN" 115
the rabbis pronounced the biblical Adam a heretic because they wanted
to call heretical anyone who harbored exalted beliefs about him.
None of the traditional commentaries have offered a credible deri-
vation of the term "many powers in heaven" as applied to these "two
powers" creation traditions. However, based on the evidence it is
possible to offer a hypothesis. It seems plausible that the rabbis called
the heresy "many powers" rather than "two powers" when the context
involved the creation story and when more than God and his primary
agent populated the heretical cosmology. This suggests that the creation
legends nurtured by the "many powers" heretics were the elaborate
angelologies and systems of archontic rulers characteristic of many
gnostic and Jewish-Christian sects. This hypothesis would certainly
be an appropriate understanding of the heresy during the late tannaitic
period, a time when the church fathers tell us that such schemes were
common. But that would logically suggest that "two powers" heretics
were the ideological predecessors of the "many powers" sects. Since that
heresy seems related to similar texts and seems later than the earliest
traditions about "two powers," the basic heresy would appear to involve
thinking that God needs help to carry out His commands la the world.
The earliest level of the tradition would testify not to a gnostic or
a Jewish-Christian configuration only but to two corresponding figures.
Only at the end of the tannaitic period, here and in the story attributed
to R. Nathan (passage 2), do we have even a hint of evidence for
the gnostic configuration. Even in the case of "many powers" specula-
tion we cannot be sure that extreme gnostics were the only heretical
groups involved. Jewish-Christians without gnostic pretensions also
adopted such complex cosmologies. The earliest sure tannaitic title for
the heresy appears to be "many powers" but the development of the
heretical tradition is similar to the "two powers" traditions, where there
is good reason to claim greater antiquity, and where we have seen
that the original layer of heresy involved two corresponding divine
manifestations. The later tannaim apparently expanded the argument
so that the heresy could also be called "two powers in heaven" when
the deities were opposing, or "many powers in heaven" when the divine
economy contained many characters.
Another relevant controversy over monotheism appears in a tannaitic
context and seems at first to be stimulated by the comment of a pagan
emperor. Upon careful consideration, it becomes clear that the opponent
is neither pagan nor an emperor, that the heresy is "two powers" and
that the tradition is only dubiously tannaitic. Furthermore, it presents us
116 THE EARLY RABBINIC EVIDENCE
with further evidence that traditions about the creation of man can be
associated with "two powers" as well as with "many powers" spe-
culation:
Again the Emperor said to Rabban Gamaliel, "He who created the
mountains did not create the wind, for it is written, For lo, there is a
1
former of mountains and a creator of wind. ' (Amos 4:13). According
to this reasoning, when we find it written of Adam, And He created...
Gen. 1:27) and He formed... (Gen. 2:7) would you also say that He
who created this did not create that? Further, there is a part of the
human body just a handbreath which contains two holes, and because
it is written uHe that plants the ear, shall He not hear? He that forms
the eye, shall He not see?" (Ps. 94:9). Would you maintain there too
that He who created the one did not create the other?" Even so he
answered. Yet he (R. Gamaliel) rejoined "At death, both are brought
(
to agree." i>
3
Some versions of this text list KWPR (denier) instead of K YSR
(emperor) as Gamaliel's opponent in this controversy. Rabbinowitz 17
lists K3YSR as the most likely original reading. Furthermore, it is
one of a number of discussions between Gamaliel and the emperor.
However, when we turn our attention to the actual tradition rather
than the text, we shall see that the original participants in the dialogue
were not likely to have been either R. Gamaliel or a Roman emperor.
Apparently, the various stories ascribed to R. Gamaliel constitute a
small folk-romance of dubious historicity.
The issue in this controversy seems to be the existence of many
creators or gods, which would imply pagan polytheism. However,
when one looks at the scripture involved, one sees that there are actually
only two gods at issue both in Amos 4:13 and Genesis 1:27 vs. 2:7.
Ps. 94:9 allows only two gods but a later editor infers "many creators"
based on the number of human limbs. That editorial statement, together
with the textual ascription to the emperor, makes it seem as if poly-
theism is the problem. Actually the issue is whether two creators can
be inferred from the different verbs used of God by scripture.
This argument becomes clear when we look at another version of
the same story:
i
i(i
Sanh. 39a; tr. Epstein.
17 D.S. ad loc.
"MANY POWERS IN HEAVEN" 117
crealeth the wind. (Amos 4:13). He replied, "You fool, turn to the
end of the verse, 'The Lord [The God] of Hosts is His name.' " Said
the other, "give me three days time and I will bring back an answer
to you." Rabbi spent those three days in fasting; thereafter, as he was
about to partake of food he was told. "There was a min waiting at the
door. Rabbi exclaimed, Yea, they put poison in my food," (Ps, 69:22).
Said [the min] "My master, I bring you good tidings; your opponent
could find no answer and so threw himself down from the roof and
died." He said, "Would you dine with me?" He replied "Yes." After
they had eaten and drunk he [Rabbi] said to him, "Will you drink the
cup of wine over which the benedictions of the Grace [after meals]
have been said, or would you rather have forty gold coins?" He replied,
"I would rather drink the cup of wine." Thereupon there came forth
a Heavenly Voice and said, "The cup of wine over [which] the Bene-
dictions [of Grace have been said] is worth forty gold coins." R. Isaac
said, "The family [of that min'] is still to be found amongst the notables
of Rome and is named the Family of Bar Luianus." is
In this version it is a min (and some texts have Sadducee) who uses
the argument It is Rabbi (i.e., Judah the Prince, ca. 200 C.E.) who
counters the arguments by saying that the continuation of the pericope
in Amos clearly implies only one God. By the time of R. Judah the
Prince no Sadducee could have participated in the argument. Rather,
the opponent was a member of a sect which also contained the son
of an acculturated family in Rome known to the narrator. Since the
method of argument is characteristic of third century rabbis and later,
it is likely that even the ascription to Judah the Prince should be
distrusted. 1!) But it is clear that the issue is "two powers." However, the
defense against the heresy based on Amos 4:13 involves stressing
the name of God, showing that the issue may be related to the earliest
varieties of the heresy.
This suggests that the original setting for the tradition was possibly
the second century, but probably the third century in Galilee, where
a heretic and an unknown rabbi (probably not Judah the Prince,
certainly not Gamaliel and Caesar) debated the question. The incident
may never have happened at all but, if not, the creator's imagination
was fired by a real issue in the third century community. The tradition
was eventually ascribed both to R. Judah and to R. Gamaliel, since
it seemed like an argument of sufficient ingenuity for these great
teachers.
18
Huilia 87a; tr. Epstein.
w See p. 26 f„ p. 121 f.
118 THE HARLY RABBINIC EVIDENCE
The major arguments against "two powers" heresies were laid down
during the tannaitic period. The amoraim accepted these categories,
expanded them greatly, and added new arguments. T h e increasing
number of biblical passages regarded as dangerous testifies to the
expansion rather than diminution of the heretical challenge. At the
same time, as was clear already at the end of the tannaitic period, the
term, "two powers" had come to signify a variety of apocalyptic,
Christian and gnostic heresies. In the amoraic period the gnostic and
Christian opponents dominated the Palestinian scene. x But all the
rabbinic evidence should be considered before trying to discover the
identities of the various kinds of sectarians who were discussed together
under this category by the rabbis.
PASSAGE 8
Tanhuma Kadoshim 4 (Buber, 37a) 2
Another interpretation; Say to the whole congregation of the Children
of Israel "You shall be holy for I am Holy. (Lev. 19:2). The Holy One
Blessed Be He told them "Be holy for I am Holy in every matter. Look at
what is written: 'For God is Holy (pi.)"' (josh. 24:19). What is the
meaning of "For God is Holy?" This verse gave an opportunity to the
heretics for it appeared like two powers. The heretics asked R. Simlai about
'Tor the Lord is Holy, (pi.)"—-You yourselves don't say that He is one
power, rather there are ttvo powers." He said to them "What fools the world
contains! Look at what is written: 'For He is a Holy God.' If it had said
'They are Holy Gods,' you might have thought there were two poivers!'
This passage is recorded m Tanhuma, a later document which is
sometimes believed to contain ancient traditions. 3 H o w e v e r , t h e version
•'!• Büchler, Marmorstein, Lauterbach and Herford discuss all these amoraic traditions
though not with equal skill. In general, it will be difficult to distinguish heretical
from orthodox Christianity except in those cases where a definite, opposing gnostic
system can be postulated.
2
Versions of this text occur: Ber. 9:l\ j . Ber. 12b; San. 38b; Gen. R. 1:13 ms. 8;
Gen. R. 8:9; Ex. R. 29:1; Dt. R. 2:13; M. Ps. 50:1; Tanhuma Bereishit 7; Tanhuma
Kadoshin 4. Far Yalkut, Pugia Fidei, and other later midrash see notes to Gen. R. 8:9
in Theodor-Albeck edition (I, p. 63).
'•'' S. Buber, Midrash Tarte huma: Bin Agadischer Commentât zum Pentateuch von
122 THE EARLY RABBINIC EVIDENCE
which names the heresy as "two powers" is not even the earliest version
of this particular tradition. In fact, although the tradition occurs in many
places in reference to many different biblical passages, this is the only
version which names the heretical doctrine as "two powers." It is
obvious that the term "two powers" was not central to the tradition
at its inception and was perhaps added during one redaction of the
Tanhuma midrash, not earlier than the fourth century.
Furthermore, the language of the passage does not identify the
heresy as "two powers" in a straight-forward way. Rather, it says only
that the arguments are "similar to the heresy of two powers." (KSTY
R S W Y W T ) . Apparently the designation "two powers" was already
well known to the amoraim. These heretical arguments were seen to
be of the same type by the rabbis, confirming what we already know
—that "two powers" had become a conventional term for a variety of
heresies whenever scripture could be interpreted to imply plural forms
for divinity. Here the argument seems confined to grammatical plurals.
However, there is nothing in the traditions to indicate that the
heretics themselves would have argued solely from plural grammar.
Wherever we know that a scriptural passage was used by heretics, the
arguments of the heretics were much more complicated.
The most complete version of this particular tradition is found in
b. Sanhédrin 38b where almost all of this type of dangerous scriptural
passages were brought together.
R. Yolianan said: in all the passages which the minim have taken
(as grounds) for their heresy, their refutation is found near at hand.
Thus: let us make man in our image (Gen. 1:26)—and God created
(sing) man in His own image (/bid,, 27); Come, let us go down and
there confound their language (Gen, 11:7)—and the Lord came down
(sing) to see the city and the tower (ibid., 5). Because there were
revealed (Gen, 35:7) to him, God. Unto God who answers me in the
day of my distress (ibid., 3); For what great nation is there that has
God so nigh (pi.) unto it, as the Lord our God is (unto us) whenever
we call upon Him (Dt. 4:7). And what one nation in the earth is
like Thy people, like Israel whom God went (pi.) to redeem for a
people unto Himself (sing.) (2 Sam. 7:23). 'Til thrones were placed
and [one that was] the ancient of days did sit (Dan. 7:9). 4
Here the passage was attributed to R. Yohanan (250-90 C.E.). In
most other versions, the teaching was attributed to R. Simlai, his
t - - i — i — yj
Rabbi Tancbuma ben Rabbi Abba (Jerusalem, 1963/64 from Vilna: 1885), p. 3.
Most scholars date it considerably later,
i- Tr. Epstein.
HOW MANY POWERS CREATED THE WORLD? 123
'° Rabinowitz, Dikduke Soferim, cid loc. notes that the text was frequently censored
here.
(î
Reuven Kimelman has shown that R. Yohanan and Origen, both living In third
century Caesarea, were likely to have known about the arguments of each other.
He feels this tradition should be attributed to R. Yohanan. See "Origen and R.
Yohanan on Canticles." paper; AJS Conference, Boston, Dec. 1975, also.
124 THE EARLY RABBINIC EVIDENCE
The minim asked R. Simlai "How many gods created the world?"
He said to them, "Do you ask me? Go and ask the first man, as it is
written, (Deut. 4:32) 'Ask now the former days which were before
thee, since God created man upon the earth.' It is not written here,'
{they) created, 'but,' {he) created.' " They said to him, "It is written,
'In the beginning God created (Gen. 1:1)' "Is it written, '(they)
createdT It is only written, '(he) created.' "
R. Simlai said, "In every passage where the minim go wrong, the
answer to them is close by."
They (the minim) returned and asked him, "What of that which is
written (Gen. 1:26) 'Let us make man in our image, after our likeness! "
He said to them "It is not written here (ih. 27) 'And they created man
in their image* but 'And God created man in His image! " His dis-
ciples said to him, "Rabbi, thou has driven away these men with a stick.
But what dost thou answer to us?" He said to them, "At the first, Adam
was created out of the dust, and Eve was created out of the man. From
Adam onward (it is said) 'in Our image according to Our likeness.'
It is impossible for man to exist without woman, and it is impossible
for woman to exist without man, and it is impossible for both to exist
without the Shekhina."
And they returned and asked him, "What is that which is written:
(Josh 22:22) 'God, God, the Lord, God, God, the Lord He knotveth! "
He said to them, "It is not written here, 'they know,' but it is written
c
He knoiveth! " His disciples said to him, "Rabbi, thou hast driven these
men away with a stick. But what dost thou answer to us?" He said to
them, "The three (names) are the name of one, just as a man says,
'Basileus,' 'Caesar,' 'Augustus.' "
They returned and asked him, "What is that which is written
(Ps. 50:1) 'God, God, the Lord hath spoken and He called the earth?' "
He said to them "Is it written here '(they) have spoken and have
called?' It is only written, 'He hath spoken and hath called the earth.' "
His disciples said to him, "Rabbi, thou hast driven these men away
with a stick. But what do you answer to us?" He said to them, "The
HOW MANY POWERS CREATED THE WORLD ? 125
three (names) are the names of one, just as a man says, 'labourers/
'masons,1 'architects.1 "
They returned and asked him, "What is that which is written
(Josh 24:19) 'For He is a holy God (where the word holy is plural)' "
He said to them. "It is written there not 'they are holy,' but 'He is holy.'
(He is a jealous God.)" His disciples said to him, "Rabbi, thou hast
driven these men away with a stick. What dost thou answer to us?"
R. Isaac said, "Holy in every form of holiness." For R. Judan said, in
the name of R. Aha, "The way of the Holy One, Blessed be He, is in
holiness. His word is in holiness, His sitting is in holiness, the baring
of His arm is in holiness. He is fearful and mighty in holiness. His ways
are in holiness, as it is written (Ps. Ixxvii 13): 'Thy -way, 0 God, is in
the sanctuary. His footsteps are in holiness: (Ps. 68:24). 'Thy goings
0 my King, my God, in the sanctuary! His sitting is in holiness: (Ps.
47:8) lGod sitteth upon the throne of His holiness.' His word is in
holiness: (Ps. 108:7) 'God God has spoken in His holiness.' The
bearing of His arm is in holiness: (Ps. 51:10) 'The Lord has made
hare His holy arm.' He is fearful and might in holiness: (Ex. 15:11)
'Who is like Thee, glorious in holiness, {fearful in praise?)' "
They returned and asked him, "What is that which is written: (Dt.
4:7) 'For what great nation is there that hath a God so near to them,
as the Lord our God, whensoever we call upon Him ?' " He said to them,
"It is not written here, 'Call upon them,' but 'Call upon Him.' " His
disciples said to him, "Rabbi, you have driven away these men with a
stick. What do you answer to us?" He said to them. "He is near in
every manner of nearness." ?
R. Simlai's method for defeating heretics is slightly different from
the description of R. Yohanan's in the Babylonian Talmud. But the
principle he espoused is similar to the Babylonian Talmud's version—•
countering the mysterious plurals with a nearby singular to show that
there is only one God.
In one place this argument seems especially appropriate. The singular
verb in Genesis 1:1 does prevent one from getting the wrong impres-
sion about the number of deities present at creation. In fact, the
Palestinian rabbis seemed satisfied with the argument in this one place
and made no further comment on that verse. Significantly, the rule of
R. Simlai is adduced from that place. It is possible that the argument
actually arose in regard to that verse and was later extended to others.
When the heretics appeal to Gen. 1:26, R. Simlai's principle is
used to "drive away the heretics" but it is not sufficient to end the
discussion within the academy. Apparently, although the "two powers"
7
j . Ber. 12d-13a,
126 THE EARLY RABBINIC EVIDENCE
4:34, which is telling proof against any dualistic doctrine not just
two creators, because it states: "You have had sure proof that the
Y H W H is God; there is no other... This day, then, be sure and take
to heart that the YHWH is God in heaven above and on earth below;
there is no other." Of course, heretical distinctions between YHWH
and God can be the target of such polemic.
Thus, we can derive a list of scriptural passages which were viewed
as dangerous in the third century, contemporary with R. Simlai or
R. Yohanan. 10 These are Gen. 1:1 f., Gen. 1:26 f., Gen. 11:5 f.,
Gen. 19:24, Gen. 35:5 f, Dt. 4:7, 2 Sam. 7:23 f., Dan. 7:9 f., Josh.
M. Ps. 50:1
Dt. 4:24 Prov. 3:19-20
Josh. 22:22
10 Gen. 1:1
Gen. R. 8:9
Dt. R. 2:13 (here also Gen. 1:3, 1:6)
Gen. 1:26
Gen. R. 8:9
San. 38b
Dt. R. 2:13
Yalkut
Gen. 11:5 J.
San. 38b
Gen. 19:24
San. 38b (R. Lshmael b. Yosi)
Gen. 35:7
San. 38b
Dt. 4:7
Ber. 9, j . Ber. 12b
Dt. R. 2:13
San. 38b
Gen. R. 1:13 ms. 8
Hx. R. 29:1
Dt. 4:32-3
llx. R. 29:1 (with Hx. 20:1)
Josh. 22:22
M. Ps. 50:1
Josh. 24:19
j. Ber. 12b
Tan. 7
Tan. kaddoshin 4 (with Lev. 19:2)
Gen. R. 1:13 ms. 8
2 Sctm. 7:23
San. 38b
HOW MANY POWERS CREATED THE WORLD? 129
22:22, Josh. 24:19, Ps. 50.1. We can review these verses as they
appear in other parts of rabbinic tradition to see whether there are any
further hints characterizing the heresy in a less conventional way.
Gen. 1:1 f.: This verse was supposed to be at issue in tannaitic
11
times. Ishmael and Akiba are reported to have argued about whether
D
the T in the first verse of the Bible was inclusive or exclusive, which
was interpreted later to defeat the idea that either heaven or earth were
deities. That a plurality of deities could be derived from the first verse
because the word for God (Elohim) is plural (Dt. R. 2:13) was the
way this issue was expressed during the third century. One wonders
if the conflict between Ishmael and Akiba (which may have been
purely grammatical) became associated with heresy during this period. 1~
Also relevant to this scriptural passage are Gen. 1:3 and 1:6 where
the same word is at issue. Since the word God, Elohim, occurs so often
in the Bible, the defenders must have had in mind a specific doctrine
of plurality of deities present at the creation. These verses were used
to advantage by many groups using Hellenistic Jewish traditions and
cannot be said to be exclusively gnostic, apocalyptic or Christian. 1:î
Dan. 7:9
San. 38b
Ps, 50:1
]. Ber. 12h
Prop. 3:19-20
M. Ps. 50:!
lt
Sec p. 7-f, fshmaei ant! Akiba on Gen. 1:1.
*- See 85 f.
i;* Sou p. 226 L and p. 257 f. Meg. 9a, J. Meg. 7 id cf., also Gen. R. 8:11. The
rabbis report that the Greek version of the Bible contained another translation of
Gen. 1:1—i.e., "God created, in the beginning." Rashi and tosafot ad loc, say that
this was to avoid the difficulty of "two powers." Tosafot says that "In the beginning"
itself could have been taken as the name of a deity, were it not for the inversion of
the familiar grammar.
Meg. Taanit, Massekheth Soferim 1:7-10, j . Meg. l:7ld (cf., Mekh. l:x. R. 12:40)
Meg. 9a also Gen. R. 8:11; 10:9, 38:10, 48:17, 98:5, I:x. R. 5:5, Lev. R. 13:5 all
report several passages where the rabbis believe that the LXX changed the MT.
Of these more than 13 alterations, only four actually appear in surviving manuscripts
of the LXX, some more attestations surviving in African versions. None of the
attestations are in verses relevant for us. However, Trenaeus does state that some
heretical groups made "In the beginning" into a God (see p. 78). Frankel {Vor-
studien, 31) suggests that all may have been variants of a Hebrew text presented to
King Ptolemy and not basically a Greek translation of the text. See also Geiger,
Nachgelassene Schriften: (herausgegeben von Ludwig Geiger), IV. Band (Berlin:
1876) p. 50 f. Against Frankel, A. Aptowitzer, "Die rabbinischen Berichte über die
Entstehung der LXX," Hak-kedem, St. Petersburg: II (1908), 11-27 and 102-122 and
1U (1909). 4-17. Also see Towner, Rabbinic Enumeration of Scriptural Examples, pp.
OU THE liARLY RABBINIC EVIDENCE
Gen. 1:26: has already been studied in great detail by many scholars.
14
The tradition of sectarian exegesis goes back to Philo and before.
It'is mentioned in Gen. R. 8:9, San. 38b, Yaikut Shimoni, and Dt.
R. 2:13 as being among the phrases in scripture against which R.
Simlai cautions. In his view, the problem is the plural of majesty
with which God ordered the creation of man. Simlai's answer is that
only one God is involved in the process because the verb in the next
verse is in the singular. Of course, it is hardly a detailed answer to
every heresy based on the verse, but it has the advantage of not
broaching any oï the other (sectarian) understandings. For instance,
the problem of the likeness between man and God is not mentioned.
Nor is the question broached of the identity of the being addressed.
The repetition of the word "Adam," implying a plurality of creators
or creations, is not mentioned. So many dangerous doctrines find
support in this verse that one can easily see its refutation by R. Simlai's
principle to be meant to counter them all by prudent dismissal with as
little characterization as possible on the part of the amoraim.
Gen. 11:17: contains the same difficult plural of majesty as in Gen.
1:26. The report of LXX translators also occurs at Gen. R. 39:10 for this
verse. ! r» Here God says "Let us go down and confound their language."
(The plural is translated literally by the received text of the LXX.)
Targum Onkclos is embarrassed by the idea that God descends, so it
translates, characteristically, "was revealed" instead.
Gen. 19:24: contains the seemingly pleonastic repetition of "from
Y H W H " in the account of the punishing of Sodom and Gomorrah.
This possible source of heresy has been added to R. Simlai's group but
can actually be traced to a Tanna, R. Ishmaei b. Yosi. if> Elsewhere,
R. Hilfi (PA 2) the son of Samkai, reports that R. Judah (PA 2) felt
the repetition meant that divine punishment was carried out by the
206-213, who rightfully stresses the history of the tradition within the miclrash itself
instead of the purported historical incident underlying it, it is enough for current
purposes to note that rabbinic tradition assumed that battle over these verses went
back to the second century B.C.I-. and to the foundation of Hellenistic Judaism.
u
Gen. 1:26 (and Gen. 2:7 as well) is fully dealt with in the following places:
Jervell, Imago Dei; M. Smith, "On the Shape of God and the humanity of the
Gentiles," in J. Neusner, ed,, Religious in Antiquity, pp. 315-26. Also R. Mel. Wilson,
Studia Pcitristica, I 1 (1957), 420-37. See p. 27 f., 113 f., 143 f. See also Birger Albert
Pearson, The Pneumatikos-Psycbikos Terminology (Missoula: SBL Dissertation Series
12, 1973), p. 51 f.
15
See note 13.
lfi
See p. 118.
HOW MANY POWHRS CREATED THE WORLD? 131
angel Gabriel. 1T Thus, he must believe that one of the " Y H W H " 's
in that passage refers to Gabriel. While Gabriel was not cc nsidered
a separate, independent power by the rabbis, the tradition attests 'to
the existence of exegeses which allowed the tetragrammaton to signify
18
a being other than Israel's one God. Obviously that very doctrine
was enough to worry the rabbis. Though this midrash does not
mention "two powers," it involves a concept coming perilously close
to that heresy, stopping only before the overt postulation of separate
authority. This is followed by the exegetical principle of R. Eleazar
who believed that "and Y H W H " refers to both God and his heavenly
court. R. Yohanan had espoused a similar idea but R. Eleazar has
refined that intuition to a rule based on the occurrence of the word
„and" ( W ) . R. Yohanan, for his part, maintains that God always
consults His heavenly court. Of course, this eliminates the problem
of principal hypostases of God whose divinity could be confused with
Him and also explains the plurals of majesty in Genesis. This verse
is important in some Christian exegesis as well. U}
Gen, 35:7 and 5: "There he built an altar and called the place El
Bethel, because it was there that God had revealed Himself to him
when he was running away from his brother." The problem is, again,
the grammatical plural referring to God in the verse. The rabbis explain
it by saying that 35:5 contains the singular to prove that God is really
one. However, this is not an innocent occurrence of a grammatical
plural either. It is bound up with the immense speculation about Jacob
and the revelation at Bethel, which is based on Genesis 29:10 f. In
different writers, notably Philo, the word "place" itself is taken as a
name for God, just as M Q W M (place) became the name for God
within early rabbinic tradition. Philo himself discussed a "second god"
in reference to the Bethel revelation. 2^
Josh. 24:19: "Joshua answered the people, 'You cannot worship
YHWH. He is a holy (pi.) God, a jealous God, and He will not forgive
your rebellion and your sins.' " The rabbis point out the singular
forms which contradict the one plural in the verse. The interpretation
of the verse is puzzling and it is possible that some detractors of the
God of Israel derived two gods—one just and one merciful, or one
who created, another who forgives—from this verse.
2 Sam. 7:23: "And thy people Israel, to whom can they be com-
pared? Is there any other nation on earth to whom thou, O God, has set
out (pi.) to redeem from slavery to be your people?" The rabbis again
show that the sense of the verse requires a single God to be present
even though a plural is implied by the grammar. However, there are
many other things in the verse which might give the impression of
more than one God. The phrase GWY W D LHYW presents a problem
to the rabbis. R. Eliezer suggested that it refers to idols which the
Israelites took out with them from Egypt, namely the idol of Micah.
As we have seen before, R. Akiba thought that this verse must refer
to the Shekhina, who is to be redeemed along with Israel. Thus, there
is room in the verse for understanding a divine manifestation other than
God, as long as that manifestation is within the ken of orthodoxy.
Dan. 7:9 f.: The rabbis point out that the singular form in the
verse counteracts the earlier plural. A good deal more speculation in
heretical communities was based on these verses than is implied by the
1
comment. -
Ps. 50:1 and josh. 22:22: have a different character from the cita-
tions above. They are mentioned by R. Simlai expressly (in j . Ber.
12df) but their distinct character makes one suspicious of ascribing
them originally to him. They may easily have been added to the tradi-
tion. Both of these examples involve the expression "God, God,
YHWH," which the minim took to exemplify plurality of deity. In
this case it is not a grammatical plural which presents the dualistic
possibility but the different names of God. Since three names of God
—El, Elohim and YHWH—are suggested in the verses, various
22
scholars postulate that Christianity with a well developed Trinitarian
doctrine was the heresy under attack. However, the LXX had already
translated the Hebrew in such a way as to imply that "two powers,"
rather than three, were present. We have seen that the linking of
different names of God to different manifestations is quite ancient.
It is probable that all the recorded midrashic traditions served as a
defense against more radical doctrines.
At the beginning of the section, I noted that it was unclear whether
See Ex. R. 29:2 and Dt. R. 2:13 as well as p. 109 f., 1 37 f., and 141.
n4 THE EARLY RABBINIC EVIDENCE
-* See p. 2-14 f.
CHAPTER NINE
1
Tr. Freeciman, with modifications.
2 Bacher, APA, II, p. 275.
136 THE EARLY RABBINIC EVIDENCE
God is present and proved his contention by using the method current
with R. Simlai and R. Yohanan. The complete structure of his argument
is considerably more complex than R. Simlaî's principle, which is again
appended as an after-thought.
R. Luliana b. Tabri said in R. Isaac's name: Whether we accept the
view of R. Hanina or of R. Yohanan all agree that none were created
on the first day, lest you should say, Michael stretched the world forth
in the South of the firmament and Gabriel in the North, while the
Holy One, Blessed be He, measured it in the middle: but I am the
Lord that makes all things, that stretched forth the heavens alone, that
spread out the earth by myself.—Mi Itti? (ib. 44:24)—who was
with me? is written; who was associated with me in the creation of the
world ? i»
Another series of traditions, evinced in Gen. R. 3:8, is attributed to
R. Isaac. In this tradition, R. Isaac cites the discussion between R.
Hanina and R. Yohanan, Isaac's teacher, about the day on which the
angels were created. Since it ought to be clear that the angels were not
created on the first day, R. Isaac maintains that we can be sure that
God accomplished creation without any angelic help. Hence, no angel
can be his equal. R. Isaac gives an example of heretical belief, testi-
fying that some people alleged that Michael and Gabriel were associates
of God in creation. God may have created the middle, but each angel
created other parts of the firmament. By means of a double entendre,
R. Isaac uses Ps. 44:24 to ask the rhetorical question: "Who was
associated with me in the creation of the world?" The answer, of
course, is that no one, not even an archangel was given such an honor.
This unnamed doctrine seems related to the Gabriel, Michael and
Metatron speculation discussed previously. ö However, other elaborate
angelologies may have been involved, for beliefs in angelic mediation
were commonplace throughout Judaism. What is dangerous, of course,
is the notion that some principal angel could be said to usurp God's
independent power.
This tradition also helps explain the relevance of the next midrash
in Dt. Rabba, concerning the meaning of Dt. 6:4:
u
R. Isaac opened (his discourse) with the text: The Lord is my portion,"
said my soul; therefore will I hope in Him (Lam. 3:24). R. Isaac
said: "This may be compared to a king who entered a province with his
5
Gen. R. 3:8 repeated 1:3. See also M. Ps, 24a, Tan. B. 1:12.
0
See p. 112 f., p. 141. The use of the word SWTP implies a separate divinity which
makes use of the name of God. This is especially clearly brought out in Ex. R. 29:2
where such ideas are expressly called "many gods" and condemned by means of
Ex. 20:2.
138 THE EARLY RABBINIC EVIDENCE
the earth." The questions raised by the psalmist are used to proclaim
God's complete unity.
The first question, " W h o m have I in heaven but Thee?" is answered
7
Dt. R. 2:34, tr. Rabbinowitz.
s
Dt. R. 2:32, tr. Rabbinowitz, with modifications. See also Gruenwald, The Visions
of Ezekiel, ad loc.
DIVINE POWERS AND ANGELS 139
PASS AG H 10
» See Lev. R. 29: U; Hag. 12b, ARxN 37 (Goldin, ARN, p. 154); Ginsberg,
Legends, V, 10 f. where it is ascribed to R. Heir. See p. 66 f,
LU
Tr, Rabbinowitz,
140 THE EARLY RABBINIC EVIDENCE
''Meddle not with them that are given to change" is seen as relevant
to the Shema by means of a double entendre: "Meddle not with those
who say there is a second God." This is done by understanding the
root S-N-Y/H to imply two, or a second, instead of "change," its usual
meaning in this form, n Instead of reading "Two parts therein shall
be cut off and die," he suggests the alternative meaning: "The mouths
that say there are 'two powers' shall be cut off and die." Having done
that, the exegete is left with the difficult problem of interpreting the
significance of the last third. This he deftly calls Israel because Israel is
the last third of two conventional groupings-—both priests, Lévites and
Israel, and Abraham, Isaac and Jacob (who is Israel). Though the
argument may be ingenious, the rabbis expressed their own disapproval
by imagining God's displeasure at such an indirect proof.
The next paragraph is thus taken to be a more direct attack on the
same problem. It is based on Proverbs, but is adduced in R. Aha's name
(PA4). R Aha seems to identify those who believe in "two powers"
as Christians. The earliest form of this tradition is actually tannaitic,
appearing in Sifre 329 where the relationship to "two powers" is
unstated. R. Aha attributes his exegesis to Solomon because the book
of Proverbs, from which the text is taken, is attributed to Solomon.
Therefore, the meaning of the verse can be clarified in light of another
work attributed to Solomon—Ecc. 4:8, where Solomon is supposed to
have stated that God has neither brother nor son. l 2 By itself, the
denial of the idea that God has brothers could have been a reference
to any polytheistic system or Persian religion where the good and evil
inclinations were sometimes conceived of as twin brothers. But the
idea that God has no son seems to be best understood as a response to
Christian or gnostic doctrine, even if there is no firm evidence for
deciding between the two.
The text differs significantly in the version occurring at Ecc. R. 4:8:
11
A similar exegesis on Zech 13:8 is attributed to R. Judah b. Simon (PA 1).
12 Seep. 11 f.
I» Fxc. R. 4:1, Tr. Rabbinowitz.
DIVINE POWERS AND ANGHLS 141
PASS AG H î
Midrash Tannalm Sifre Dt. 307
p. 187
The Rock, Perfect in all His actions'.
The former because he formed the
wodd first and formed man in it.
u
The root (3HY) is not attested in Hebrew or Aramaic with the meaning of
consort.
15
See the technical use of the term in relation to sharing God's name in j. Taan.
2 (65d) b. San. 63a, b. Suk, -15b, Ex. R. 42 (to Ex. 32:4). The power could be a
partner in that he shares the divine name. See p. 112, p. 137, p. 183 f.
142 THE HARLY RABBINIC EVIDENCE
ui
The defensive argument may have been spurred by the notion that SYYR
DIVINI* POWERS AND ANGELS 143
("formed") signifies that a different and lower creator than the high God, who can
"create." (Hlohim). See the controversy between Gamaliel and the hmperor, p. 116 f.
17
See p. 131 f. where R. Heazar discusses also the heavenly court in regard to
ambiguo-us passages of this type.
144 THH EARLY RABBINIC EVIDENCE
such passages are easily missed and there is no way to control rabbinic
literature for all of them. But there is one that is very provocative:
PASSAGE 12
Pesikta Rabbati 20, 4
Then a troop of angels of destruction, strong and mighty, who are set
round about the throne of glory, met him. When Moses reached them, they
sought to burn him with the breath of their mouths. What did the Holy
One, Blessed be He, do? He spread something of His own splendor about
Moses, stood him up before His throne, and said: "Moses, make a reply
to the ministering angels—speak up to them!" (The words: "He causes
{him) to take hold of the face of His throne and spreadeth His cloud upon
him (Job. 26:9)," prove, according to R. Nahum, that the Almighty spread
about Moses something of the splendor of the presence of God, which is His
cloud. Moses said to Him: "Master of the world, I fear that they will
consume me with the breath of their mouths." God said: "Take hold of the
throne of My glory and turn them back with thy words." Thereupon Moses
made bold and gave a reply to the ministering angels. He said: "You have
no cause to burn me with the breath of your mouths (in your wish to keep
the Torah for yourselves.) In the Torah it is written (for the guidance of
mortals) 7 am the Lord your God. (Ex. 20:2).' But you, (who live in the
very presence of the one God)—how could you have many gods? In the
Torah it is written Thou shalt have no other Gods (Ex. 20:3). [Have
you divided minds?] Have you 'two powers' (such as mortals are likely
to have)?..." io
This late report in Pesikta Rabbati contains a passing reference to
"two powers in heaven." The legend began as a commentary on Ex.
20:2 and related how Moses went up to heaven in the cloud on Sinai
to get the Ten Commandments for Israel, This legend recounts a
heavenly journey, a primary motif of Merkabah mysticism and implies,
as Philo did, that Moses shared in God's divinity, though here it is
solely for his protection. The reference to "two powers" occurs when
Moses confronts the ministering angels, who, knowing a good thing
when they see it, want to keep the Torah for themselves. Moses is
forced to persuade them that the Torah is meant for Israel. He argues
that the laws are designed only for man because the angels do not
need them. They do not covet, have neither father nor mother, nor do
they practice idolatry. He asks the angels whether or not they believe in
"two powers," since they selfishly want to keep the first commandment
for themselves. The first commandment is obviously viewed as a firm
defense against dualistic or binitarian heresy. It is also clear that these
traditions must be late since the charge of "two powers" is conventional,
only used as a folkloric motif and presupposes no live heretical issue
in the community.
L!)
Tr. Braude, p, 408-9 with changes to express the direct reference to "two powers"
in the Hebrew.
146> THE HARLY RABBINIC EVIDHNCB
Since Braucie has kk the version out of his English edition of M. Ps.,
he must view it as secondary. However at whatever point it entered the
tradition, it is an argument against "two powers" of the conventional
sort we have noticed. Marmorstein also listed another place which he
feels is relevant to the heresy and which should be mentioned, M.
Ps. 51:8.
"Only He alone knows, which wonderful deeds He will perform."
is the key phrase for Marmorstein, who believes it to be a covert
argument against gnostics. This is certainly possible, but that does not
seem to be a necessary conclusion. The passage only argues against
people who claim to prophesize, without mention of the cosmology
to which they adhere, Even less evident is the relationship to "two
powers" heresy. It rather seems to me that the "alone" in scripture
occasions what is now a conventional remark taken from rabbinic
"two powers" polemic
These last two passages have been mentioned because they were
linked with the heresy by the last generation of scholars. However,
most editions of M. Ps. do not even print these few lines. Passages
of this sort can be discovered in other, less obscure places as well, but
they will yield no further information for our study. It is best now to
summarize what has been found in the rabbinic texts and then turn
to the extra-rabbinic evidence, which solves some of the ambiguities
we noted in the rabbinic texts.
Tannaitic Evidence
Conflicting Appearances of God:
Exodus 15:3 vs. Ex. 24:10 f.
Daniel 7:9 f., later Ps. 22:2
defense: Ex. 20:2
Dt. 32:39
Is. 46:4 ) i.e. Is. 44-47 generally
44:6 - as well as other II
41:4 \ Isaiah passages
Aher and Metatron
Daniel 7:9 f-
Exodus 24:1 f.
possibly: Ps. 37:25 (LXX 36:25)
Ps. 104:31 (LXX 103:31, see Hull. 60a)
Ex. 23:21
A Controversy between Ishmael and Akiba;
Heaven and Earth as Divine Powers:
Genesis I : I
Genesis 4: L
Genesis 21:20
Midrashic Warnings Against Two Powers
Deuteronomy 32:39 (?)
defense: Dt, 32:39
Nu. 15:30
Liturgical Prohibitions in the Mishnah
Deuteronomy 22:6 (?)
defense: Deuteronomy 6:4, 22:6
Many Powers in Heaven-,
Adam as a Divine Creature
Genesis 1:26 Gen. 2:7 etc.
Genesis 19:24
Amos 4:13
Amoraic Evidence
1
See p. 44 f.
SUMMARY OF RABBINIC FINDINGS 151
2
See lübogen, p. 36 f. for a discussion of the Birkat Haminim written by Samuel
the Younger under the direction of Gamaliel. Samuel's text was probably appended
to an earlier, version against the "arrogant," and other enemies of the synagogue.
Joseph Heinemann, Prayer in the Period of the Tannciim and the Amoraim: Its Nature
and its Patterns fin Hebrew] (Jerusalem: 1966), p. 142-4.
:i
A synagogue curse offensive to Christians is mentioned by several church fathers.
-'• Ber. I, 3c. See Geza Vermes. "The Decalogue and the Minim," Post-Biblical
Jewish Studies (Leiden: 1975), pp. 169-177 .
SUMMARY OF RABBINIC FINDINGS 153
0
The Shema, like much of che Deuteronomist perenesis, contains the proclamation
of God's unity emphasizing particularly the fear and love of God, which in turn were
associated with the two aspects of justice and mercy in midrashic literature. The same
structure of thought is found as early as Philo. There is some evidence that Philo
was relying on even more ancient tradition in discussing this matter (see p. 178 f.),
suggesting a very early origin for the relatively late discussion of fear and love that
we find in our present texts.
fi
See Diduche 82 and Elbogen, p. 253-
7
liven methods of exegesis against dangerous scriptural passages found their way
into the liturgy. According to Mann's reconstruction of the triennial cycle of the
scripture readings which was current in Palestine, the haftarah for the Ten Command-
ments was chosen in order to deal with the same issues that we are discussing. Jacob
Mann, The Bible as Read and Preached in the Old Synagogue (New York: 1971),
believed that the Ten Commandments s/drah actually began at Ex. 20:2 in the triennial
cycle, because the ten commandments actually began there. Mann believed that the
haftarah for Ex. 20:2 f. must have started with Is. 43:11 and continued through v. 21.
154 THH HARLY RABBINIC EVIDENCE
of the tannaitic period, and into the amoraic, the term "two powers"
became more popular, possibly because it defined the heresy doctrinaliy,
but did not reveal much information about it. It could be easily con-
trasted with "no power in heaven" on the one hand and "many powers
in heaven" on the other. By the beginning of the amoraic period
"two powers" was the clearly understood title for all binitarian or
dualistic heresies and doubtlessly no longer referred to any one particular
sect.
It seems clear, then, that the synagogue and academies in Palestine
were the locus of the debate and defense against "two powers,"
Exegesis was the earliest battleground of the conflict. Although the
answers to the heretics were worked out by the academies, the question
must have been raised in relation to Bible-reading and by groups
who were interested in hearing the Jewish Bible expounded. Since
we know that some "two powers" heretics were among those cursed in
the synagogue, we can assume the following tentative reconstruction
of the evidence: Either contemporary with the exegetical problem or
immediately after it, a successful campaign was mounted to silence
various sectarians in the synagogue by regulating the content and proce-
dures of prayer. Among those silenced were some evincing "two
powers" interpretations of scripture. The sectarians may not have called
themselves "two gods" or "two powers" heretics. Only the offended
party, from a new position of authority, described these doctrines as
heresy. When the rabbis insisted that prayers in synagogue meet
specific standards of monotheism, the incipient heretics and the rabbis
withdrew from each other by mutual consent but certainly on less
than peaceful terms. Although they separated, the groups encountered
each other in debate frequently, showing that the heretics continued
to proliferate and that they remained in close proximity to the rabbinic
community. Since the provenance of the debate was largely Palestine,
when the center of Jewish life moved to Babylonia, the debate slackened.
The heretics were entirely outside of the synagogue and probably
were no longer in active conflict with the Jewish community. The late
occurrences of "two powers" traditions may have been occasioned by
sporadic encounters with heretics but seem primarily meant for the
encouragement and edification of believers rather than for defense
against a threatening heretical group.
The next step in the investigation should be clear. At the beginning
of the discussion of this heresy, several candidates for the charge of
dualism were surveyed. In the next section, I will try to identify the
SUMMARY OF RABBINIC FINDINGS 155
PHILO
The survey of rabbinic traditions about "two powers" has given us
some clues for discovering the identity of the heretics whose beliefs
became the target of the charge of "two powers," T h e major criterion
must be the use by sectarian candidates of the same biblical verses
which the rabbis associate with the heresy. We can now survey the
dualistic phenomena outlined in the introduction. This time, we can
concentrate on those extra-rabbinic traditions which support the ideas
of a second figure in heaven by means of the scriptural passages at the
center of the rabbinic controversy. Of course, in a work of this size,
only the broad outlines of the history of the tradition can be suggested.
Specialists in each of the extra-rabbinic literatures should be able to
work through the arguments in more detail.
The first significant extra-rabbinic evidence of "two powers" tradi-
tions is from Philo. He actually uses the term "two Gods" which was
a synonym for "two powers" in rabbinic thought. l Yet his opinion
of the idea, when we look carefully, is not entirely negative:
Yet there can be no cowering fear for the man who relies on the
hope of the divine comradship, to whom are addressed the words
"I am the God who appeared to thee in the place of God."
(Gen. 31 : 13). Surely a right noble cause of vaunting it is, for a
soul that Gods deigns to show himself to and converse with it. And
do not fail to mark the language used, but carefully inquire whether
there are two Gods; for we read "I am the God that appeared to
thee," not "in my place" but "in the place of God," as though it
were another's. What then are we to say? He that is truly God is one,
but those that are improperly so-called are more than one. Accordingly,
the holy word in the present instance has indicated Him who truly
is God by means of the articles, saying "I am the God," while it
omits the article when mentioning him who is improperly so called,
saying "who appeared to thee in the place" not "of the God" but
simply "of God." ~
And the sacred word ever entertaining holier and more august con-
ceptions of Him that is, yet at the same time longing to provide
instruction and teaching for the life of those who lack wisdom, likened
God to man, not however, to any particular man. For this reason it
has ascribed to Him face, hands, feet, mouth, voice, wrath and in-
dignation, and over and beyond these, weapons, entrances and exits,
movements up and down and all ways, and in following this general
principle in its language it is concerned not with truth, but with the
profit accruing to its pupils, For some there are altogether dull in
their natures, incapable of forming any conception whatever of God
as without a body, people whom it is impossible to instruct otherwise
than in this way, saying that as a man does so God arrives and departs,
goes down and comes up, makes use of a voice, is displeased at
wrongdoings, is inexorable in His anger, and in addition to all this
has provided Himself with shafts and swords and all other instru-
ments of vengeance against the unrighteous. For it is something to
be thankful for if they can be taught self-control by the terror held
over them by these means. Broadly speaking the lines taken through-
out the Law are these two only, one that which keeps truth in view
and so provides the thought "God is not as man" (Num. 23 : 19)
the other that which keeps in view the ways of thinking of the duller
folk, of whom it is said, "The Lord God will chasten thee, as a man
should chasten his son" (Dt. 8 : 5). Why then do we wonder any
longer at His assuming the likeness of angels, seeing that for the
succour of those that are in need He assumes the likeness of man?
Accordingly, when He says, "I am the God who was seen of thee
in the place of God" (Gen. 31 : 13) understand that He occupied
the place of an angel only so far as appeared, without changing with
a view to the profit of him who was not yet capable of seeing the
r
true God. < o
1
See, e.£„ Quod Deus 53 f., 56 f., 61-62. Leg. All. iü 204-207. See also N. A.
Dahl, Widersprüche.
~> See discussions of Philo's allegoricai method in J. Pépin, Mythe et Allégorie
(Paris: 1958), p. 238. Sowers, Hermeneutics, p. 238. Wolfson, Philo, T, 25, 37, 55-86;
II, 94-126.
6
Som. i, 62.
162 THE HXTRA-RABBINIC HVIDENŒ AND CONCLUSIONS
" Op. 20 (C-W Ï 6, 9, 11), Som. i, 66, i, 117 f., I, 229 (C-W HI 219, 6; 23, 4 f.
cf., 25 3, 24 f.). See Koester, "topos" in TDNT.
s
Leg. All. i, 44 (C-W I, 72, 5) Fug. 75 (C-W III, 125, 25) Fit;*, 11 (III, 126, 8)
Som, i, 64 (C-W HI, 218, 2A) Leg. All. iii 1 (C-W I, 114, 4) Sob. 63 (C-W II,
227-32).
!)
Wolfson, Philo, I, 200-294.
10
See, e.g., Fug. 164 f., Mut. 8-10. This can be profitably compared with the
rabbinic legend in the Mekhilta.
11
Seep. 118 f.
U Seep. 35 f.
PHILO l é 3"
whenever the biblical text might imply the existence of a second deity,
not just when the term ''place" is present:
(Gen. ÎX : 6) Why does (Scripture) say, as if (speaking) of another
God, "In the image of God He made man" and not "m His own
image" ?
Most excellently and veraciously this oracle was given by God.
For nothing mortal can be made in the likeness of the Most High
One and father of the universe but (only) in that of the second
God, who is His logos. For it was right that the rational part of the
human soul should be formed as an impression by the divine logos,
since the pxe-logos God is superior to every rational nature. But He
who is above the logos exists in the best and in a special form—what
thing that comes into being can rightfully bear His likeness? More-
over, Scripture wishes to show that God most justly avenges the
virtuous and decent men because they have certain kinship with His
logos, of which the human mind is a likeness and image, M
Here Philo makes no disclaimer about the metaphoric quality of
the terms he is using. He unabashedly calls the logos a ''second God."
Thus, in calling attention to various similar scriptural passages, the
rabbis were not just stylizing theoretical arguments. Real traditions of a
"second God" were present in Judaism as early as the time of Philo.
Though the rabbis are opposed to the whole notion, Philo seems only
to be opposed to the naive forms of the belief.
Of course, the idea of a "second God" raised the problem of com-
promising monotheism with Philo as well. Philo's answer to the pro-
blem was, as we saw in On Dreams, entirely unique. He said that when
one looks carefully at the articles before the nouns in the sentence,
one sees that "a god" merely refers to the divinity present at that
moment, while the high God is signified either by the noun "God,"
without the article, or "the God" with a definite article.
In other words, Philo allows for the existence of a second, principal,
divine creature, whom he calls a "second God," who nevertheless is
only the visible emanation of the High, ever-existing God. In doing
this, he has an entirely different emphasis than the rabbis. He is
clearly following the Greek philosophers. lf» Like them, he is reluctant
rt Italics added. Quest, in Gen. ii, 62 Philo Supplement I, p. 150, tr. R. Marcus.
Eusebius (P.E. VII, 13, 1) credits Philo with the term "second God," denoting the
logos.
lf)
See Wolfson, Philo, I, ch. A to whom I am heavily indebted for the following
discussion. See also Festugière p. 162 and H. Peterson, Der Monotheismus als
politisches Problem (Leipzig: 1935).
PHILO 165
1,1
T h e vocabulary Philo uses is not unlike some other mystical, philosophical
systems. Gilles Quispel (Guo.ttic Studies, I) points out that the Paternal Intellect of
the Chaldean Oracles (which is the receptical of the sensible forms and the image of
the godhead) is called a "second God" (deuteros theos) by Pletho. Quispel's point is
that the conception of the second deity in the Chdldctetin Oracles (a second century
document) handles the problem of visible manifestation of godhead in a Platonic-
fashion. At the same time, this presupposes the relationship between mystical theurgy
and neo-Platonism that E. R. Dodds has suggested. H e further maintains that these
doctrines can be discovered in the gnostics who opposed Amoheus in the third century
A.D. and even in the work of Basilides earlier.. exploring this suggestion at this
moment would take us too far afield. But if his analysis is correct, it appears that
Philo, in some ways, would represent an early example of this supposed mystical-
philosophical tradition which sanctioned the concept of a "second God" to describe
some aspect of the godhead.
The idea of a "second God" also shows up in Christian neo-platonism and in many
philosophical discussions in the church. See p. 229 for Origen and the modalist
controversy.
l66 THF. EXTRA-RABBINIC EVIDENCE AND CONCLUSIONS
In this particular case, Philo denies that any other being can be
God's agent, for there is only one God. It is interesting that Philo
picks the context of the story of Melchizedek to discuss this issue,
since elsewhere he allows that the logos can be considered as a "second
God" and divine mediator. It appears as though Philo is opposed to
!7
Lvg. iii, 81.
PHILO 167
1K
See Fred. L, Horton, Jr., The Melchizedek Tradition: A Critical Examination of
the Sources to the Fifth Century A.D. and in the Epistle to the Hebrews (Cambridge:
1976). See also Friedender, Gnostlcismus, p. 30-33. See also Birger Pearson,
"Friedländer Revisited: Alexandrian Judaism and Gnosticism," Studla Philonica, 2
(1973) p. 26. Sometimes, Melchizedek is allegorized as the logos by Philo. See
below, p. 168.
li}
Conf, 92, (Loeb, IV, 6 t ) , tr. Cofson and Whitaker. The continuation of the
passage is cited below, p. 168. Also see p. 177 f.
20
See especially Conf. 146. These traditions would seem to parallel those about
a divine messenger whose name is Jacob or Israel. See p. 199 f. and J. Smith in
Religions In Antiquity.
168 THE EXTRA-RABBINIC EVIDENCE AND CONCLUSIONS
- ü M/g. I7-1, See also Som. i, 115 bused on the scriptural citation where Abraham
meets a "place." (Gen. 28:11).
-'7 Mut, 126, M/g. 168, Sow. i, 57, Leg. All iii, 177, Mut. 87, Qui s Her. 205
and often, in fact, Philo is able to link the two Hebrew words for God, Etohim and
YHWH, which he knew by their Greek equivalents theos and kyrios, with the
h'xistent One and His logos respectively. This is certainly not the only meaning which
he chooses to draw out of the names of God. Other ideas, like linking mercy and
justice with the divine names, which is parallel to rabbinic thought (see p. 38 f.)
will also be relevant to us. But such exegesis is always available to him in analyzing
the Old Testament.
2R
Such confusion is usually explained by modern exegetes as due to differences
between J and £ sources of the Bible. Confusion between the angel of Y H W H and
God himself can be seen in Gen. 16:7 f., 21:17 f., 22: l i , 31: H f.; l:x. 3:2 f., Ju. 2:1. f.
as well as Ex. 23:21 f. which the rabbis discuss.
PHILO 171
Ex. 23:21. Philo takes special notice of it, by stating that "standing"
or "establishment" is a particularly important part of the tradition about
Moses' theophany. Applied to God, "standing" is an indication of
God's immutability. Furthermore, this quality is so superabundantly
present in God that Moses was able to share it and become, in a way,
divine:
-!> Som. ii, 222-3. (Loeb V, p. 543, tr. Colson and Whitaker).
:m
See above, p. 170.
'•n Post. 28-31. For Moses, as divine mediator, see W . A. Meeks, The Prophet King.
Moses, is, e.g., said to be the eldest born of the logos. Quest, in Ex. ii, 44, Qu/s her.
205, cf., Agr. 51, Som. i, 215.
;;2
For a detailed exposition of these "exemplars" see the dissertation of Lala
172 THE EXTRA-RABBINIC EVIDENCE AND CONCLUSIONS
K. K. Dey, The Intermediary World and Patterns of Perfection in Philo and Hebrew,';,
SBL Dissertation Series 25, p. 65 f.
•î;i Notice the ambiguity over whether a man may see God!
PHILO 173
logos. But he has also hinted that these doctrines are sometimes held
by people who are less wise in philosophy and who actually compromise
monotheism, which is precisely the issue in the rabbinic community.
Perhaps these more radical traditions were mystical or apocalyptic,
for we have seen evidence that they involve a journey to God. Further-
more, this voyage confers a supernatural status upon the voyager on
the pattern of the heavenly ascent of Moses described in Ex. 24.
The doctrine of the logos is relevant in two further ways to Philo's
conception of creation. First, Philo maintains that the logos was God's
partner in creation. :H To this effect, he calls the logos, "The Begin-
ning," "The Ruler of the Angels," and significantly, "the Name of
;!5
God." But because the logos is an emanation of God, Philo can
also talk about him as God's offspring, or the first-born son of God. ;î{i
As such, he is a kind of immortal, heavenly man or the true father of
men, :!7 For this reason, Philo seems to say in places that God actually
put two men into Eden. ;JS We remember, of course, that the rabbis
opposed ideas that there was more than one Adam, that God had a
partner in creation ;î!) or even that angels helped him. 4 0 They objected
to the idea that there could be more than one Adam, on the grounds
that men would begin to boast of their differing lineage, some claiming
to have descended from a better man. Of course, most sectarian groups
believed themselves better than the common variety of men. But Philo
also claims that the virtuous had a better father in that they were
descended from the higher Adam. 4 1 This provides us with a good
example of a predecessor to the unstated argument which the tannaim
would eventually call heresy, the same argument which was supplied
by the amoraim. •*-
Another important aspect of the rabbinic tradition in the Mekhilta
which is parallel to Philo has not yet been discussed. That is the doctrine
of the mercy and justice of God, based on the interpretation of His
divine names. In discussing the early tradition of the Mekhilta, I
:;1
Leg. All. in, 96; Cher. 12 5, Mig- 6, Spec. Leg. i, 81.
;î5
Con]. 146.
:m
Aw- 5 h QH}S Her., Sam. i, 2 1 5 , Conf. 1-16.
;î
" Fug. 72, Det. 83, Quest, in Gen, i, 4, Conf. 4\, Qui s Her. 23-3.
;
ï« Leg. All. i, 31, 53, 55.
;ii
> See p . 110 f., 117 f.
10
S e e p . 1 3 7 f.
41
Leg. All. 53. He also uses Cain-Seth typologies to more potent effect in Post.
35, 38 f, 42, 43, 45, 78. Fug. 64, Det. 32, 68, 103.
^ See p. 110 f.
174 THE EXTRA-RABBINIC EVIDENCE AND CONCLUSIONS
present passage. "I am God" or "I am thy God, increase and mul-
tiply." (Gen. 35:11). Of the perfect He is both Lord and God, as
in the Decalogue, "I am the Lord thy God" (Ex. 20 : 2) and else-
where, "The Lord God of our fathers" (Dt. 4 : 1 ) for it is His will
that the wicked man should be under His sway as his Lord, and
thus with awe and groaning feel the fear of the Master hanging
over him; that the man of progress should be benefitted by Him as
God. And through the one he remains free from lapses, through
the other he is most surely God's man. ts
Philo uses Ex. 20:2 for the same reason that the rabbis did—to show
the unification of both God's attributes at the Sinai theophany. 4;) This
similarity is especially striking when one notices that otherwise Philo
almost never comments on Ex. 20:2, preferring as a basis for his
exegesis the text of the Ten Commandments which occurs in Deutero-
nomy.
Several other scriptures seen as dangerous by the rabbis are applied
to the powers by Philo. Gen. 1:26, for instance, is used by Philo to
prove that the creative power is divine:
Akin to these two is the creative power called God because through
this the Father, who is its begetter and contriver, made the universe;
so that "I am thy God" is equivalent to "I am thy maker and arti-
ficer." And the greatest gift we can have is to have Him for our
architect, who was also the architect of the whole world, for He did
not form the soul of the bad, since wickedness is at enmity with Him,
and in framing the soul which is in the intermediate stage He did not
serve as the sole agent according to the holiest man, Moses, since
such a soul would surely admit like wax, the different qualities of
noble and base. And therefore we read "Let us make man after our
image" (Gen, 1 : 26), so that according as the wax received the bad
or the noble impress it should appear to be the handiwork of others
or of Him who is the framer of the noble and the good alone. r>o
Here Philo flirts with ideas of providence opposed by the tannaim.
Notice too that Philo does not shrink from the idea that God's agents
are called gods themselves, nor from the idea that God had help in
creation—ideas which the rabbis later opposed. N o r is this the only
place where Philo uses such arguments. Such interpretations are com-
mon. Elsewhere Philo refers to other texts which were seen by the rabbis
to be dangerous because they could imply a plurality of deities: Gen.
11:7 ("Come let us go down to confuse their language"), Gen. 3:22
(Behold Adam has become as one of us"), and Gen. 1:26 are men-
tioned. 5L Philo maintains that one of God's two powers descends—
in one case, to create man; in another, to punish those building the
tower. He explains that these powers are angels and that their presence
has so impressed some people (even Moses) that they feel no shame
in calling them gods. In other words, Philo depends on his concept of
the powers of justice and mercy to explain scriptural plurals, calling
52
them both angels and divine.
Therefore in On the Change of Names, Philo can offer another
interpretation of what the patriarchs saw when scripture says they saw
God. (6-7). First, he remarks that they saw the same creative power of
God which Moses saw on Sinai for the first time, having already been
privileged to see God's ruling power. We remember that he has
previously said that the elders saw the image of God or the logos.
Of course, the two interpretations are not entirely consistent. Yet here,
they are not entirely contradictory, for both the logos and the powers
represent summations of all God's emanations. Since Moses has already
known the lesser of God's powers, seeing the higher power as well can
be equivalent to seeing the logos, the sum of all the powers. Again we
note the same exegesis as the Mekhilta records in rabbinic lore a century
later. This time Philo provides a witness to the doctrine which the
rabbis defend, instead of the one they condemn.
At the beginning of On the Change of Names, Philo discusses
seeing God. First, he cautions against understanding "seeing" literally.
"Seeing" means "perceiving," not seeing with the senses. The passage
where Abram was granted a vision of Y H W H (Gen. 17:1-5) before
his name was changed to Abraham forms the basis of Phîlo's discussion,'
but he goes far afield in reflecting upon it. At first, Abram only saw
God's sovereign power (15-17). When scripture says that God said
to him "I am thy God" it signified that a vision of the higher, creative
elders of the nation, and interweaving the oral teachings with the
f)
results of his Bible reading. * The parallels between the rabbis and
Philo are so complete in the case under consideration as to make it
extremely likely that some relationship existed. Furthermore, almost
no scholar disputes the conclusion that Philo and the rabbis evince
common traditions.
The question of the nature of the influence is much more interesting
and difficult. Philo is aware of Jewish "elders," which may be a
reference to the technical sense of the word in Palestine. On the other
hand, the rabbis never seem to be aware of Philo himself, so any
channel of transmission is likely to be indirect. Therefore the various
possibilities seem to be: (1) The traditions come from a common
source. (2) The traditions have been borrowed from Palestine by Philo
or other Alexandrian Jews. (3) Some may have been borrowed by
Palestinian Jews from Hellenistic Judaism through various channels
of communication. Now these are not mutually exclusive categories,
for even the common source implies borrowing in one direction or
another. We are not likely to find conclusive evidence for distinguishing
between categories with respect to the traditions under consideration.
But, since the exegeses under consideration are extremely complex
and remarkably parallel, it seems likely that there was a basic tradition
common to both Philo and the rabbis which was used in individual
ways. This suggests that different issues motivated the exegesis in first
century Alexandria and second century Palestine. Philo was interested
in showing that the Bible portrayed a God sophisticated enough to make
sense in a Greek intellectual climate. Anthropomorphism and God's
immutability were his main problems. He needed a way to portray God
as immutable yet available to man in the material world so he stressed
the traditions of intermediation. The rabbis, on the other hand, were
interested in uniting Judaism and preventing extreme applications of
the same traditions which had appealed to Philo. There are many
explanations for the difference, but it seems to me that it is a mistake
to stress differences between Hellenistic and Palestinian Judaism too
strongly in this regard. The rabbis were certainly aware of the issue
which gripped Hellenistic Jews and showed their sensitivities in most
respects. Philo shows sensitivities parallel to the rabbis. There is much
more overlap than Is usually assumed. Rather, the differences seem
04
See Wolfson, Philo, I, 88 f., 190 f., for a more complete discussion of the
problem.
180 THE EXTRA-RABBINIC EVIDENCE AND CONCLUSIONS
the Jews, was not equated merely with a demiurge. They therefore
argued that YHWH should he understood as the merciful aspect of
God's providence.
Philo viewed scripture through heavy philosophical lenses. It is
difficult from his writings alone to characteme the traditions outside
of philosophical discourse and la their developing heretical setting.
To describe these traditions adequately we have to survey the inter-
testimental and particularly the apocalyptic literature.
CHAPTER TWELVE
speculation about the identity of the "son of man," (2) the Ex. 24
theophany, possibly together with other passages in the Bible where
God is pictured in the form of a man (3) the related descriptions of
3
the angel of YHWH who carries the divine name (4) scriptural
verses which describe God as plural (Gen. 1:26), Of course, the study
of these traditions in apocalyptic literature cannot be exhaustive.
Hopefully it can be representative of the developments peculiar to
apocalyptic.
It is worthwhile to point out that many of these dangerous exegetical
traditions may never have been entirely separate at any point m their
development. Biblical scholars have recently noticed the relationship
between all works describing the divine warrior figure (including both
Ex. 15 and Dan. 7) and ancient Near Eastern mythology. 4
Based on this kind of evidence, it seems likely that the human
appearance of the divine mediator was a most important part of the
tradition. As Philo has shown us, these ideas can be related to the
notion of the image and likeness of God and the problem of anthro-
pomorphism in scripture. The scriptural basis for such discussions in
Philo is not only the theophany passages in the Old Testament but also
Gen, 1:26 f. which describes the creation of man in the image and
likeness of God. The motifs of likeness and image, as well as the
identity of the heavenly man, have been studied by several scholars. 5
In the LXX eikön is used for SLM (image) and homoiösts is used
for DMWT (likeness). The latter, strictly speaking, means "likeness"
only in the sense of similarity, not in the sense of an explicit image.
However, there are several aspects of its biblical usage which have
:t
This might also include the passages in scripture where YHWH and an angel
are confused, e.g., Gen, 16:7 f., 21:17 f., 22:11, 3i:Hf., Ex. 3:2 f., Ju. 2:1 f., as
well as Ex. 23:21 f., though the rabbis themselves do not discuss most of these particular
pericopes.
* See F. M. Cross, "The Divine Warrior in Israel's Early Cult," in Biblical Motifs:
Origins and Transformations, ed., Alexander Altman (Cambridge: 1966), pp. 11-30.
See also Patrick D. Miller, The Divine Warrior in Early Israel (Cambridge: 1973).
f)
See TDNT, eikön (Kittel), homoios and cognates (Schneider). Also J. Jervell,
imago Dei (Göttingen: I960) and a critique by M. Smith, "On the Shape of God and
the Humanity of the Gentiles," Religion in Antiquity. R. Me. L. Wilson, "The Early
History of the Exegesis of Gen. 1:26," Studia Patristica, 1 (1957), 420-37. F. W.
Ehestes, Eikön im Neuen Testament (Berlin: 1958) Harald Hegermann, Die Vorstel-
lung vom Schöpfungsmittler im hellenistischen Judentum und Urchristentum (Berlin:
1961); H. M. Schenke, Der Gott "'Mensch" in der Gnosis (Göttingen: 1962); H. F.
Weiss, Untersuchungen zur Kosmologie des hellenistischen und palästinischen Juden-
tums (Berlin: 1966). See also Jarl Fossum, dissertation, Utrecht, for a very helpful
summary of the Adam traditions.
JEWISH SECTARIAN TEXTS 185
«* See p. 114.
186 THE EXTRA-RABBINIC EVIDENCE AND CONCLUSIONS
13
on visionary ascent, parallel to the ascent at the end of life. Several
functions of the angels may be served by men, if they are privileged
to assume an exalted, triumphant or immortal form (like Enoch).
In apocalyptic writings Enoch, Elijah, and Moses are frequently
described as men of God, who are transported to heaven. 14 Enoch
traditions were especially elaborate (cf., already Sir. 44:16, 49:14;
Wis. 4:10-15; Jub. 4:16-25). In the Enochian cycle Enoch himself is
transformed into an angelic being. In III Enoch he is identified with
the angel Metatron. But apocalyptic traditions about the translation
ancl enthronement of Levi and Moses also exist, l 5 and often involved
the principal angel as guide.
It should be noted that the pneuma or spirit of the righteous was
characteristically thought to take on angelic form upon his death. (See
Dan. 12:3; Mt. 13:43; 22:30; I Enoch 104:2, 4, 6 cf. 39:6-7). There-
fore principal angels or notables served as role models for the righteous,
as well as their guides. In this way, we can speak of an equivalent
function for the principal angels and their patriarchal initiates—
(
revealing both wisdom and the mystery of immortality. i> It is this kind
of tradition which best explains the astral journeys reported of the
ancient rabbis in the Merkabah texts. It also explains the frequent use
of Hebrew angelic names in the magical papyri.
While God is sometimes viewed as using the yekara, spirit, word,
menira or logos at creation, early evidence concerning an angel helping
God at creation is quite complicated. In late texts, the angelic stature
of the agent of God active at creation is not central. We have already
noted a number of later Christian traditions in which "the beginning"
or "wisdom" helped God in creation. 17 However, there are few clear
'i;* I En. 71:3; II En. 22; Apoc. Abr. 12 ff.; Life of Adam 25:20, M; Apoc. Mos.
37, Testament Abr. throughout.
14
See p, 172 f. for Philo. Moses is even called an archangel and eldest logos.
Quis Her. 205; cf., Agr. 51; Sont. i, 215.
15
For Levi, see Test. Levi 2-5, 8. For Moses see Meeks, The Prophet King.
10
See F. R. Goodenough, Jewish Symbols, VIII, pp. 121-218 also Ignazio Mancini,
Archaeological Discoveries relative to the Judaeo-Christians, tx. G. Bushneil (Jeru-
salem: 1970), Beliarmino' Bagatti, L'Église de la Circoncision, tx. Storme, (Jerusalem:
1965), p. 113 and compare their archaeological evidence of mystical journey through
the cosmic ladder or seven heavens on tomb-stones etc. with the literary evidence
in T. Levi 2:2-7, 3 Baruch 2:2, 3:1, 10:1, 11:1-4, Jubilees 32:20-22, T. Isaac
(Coptic 67, 70; Arabic U6-47, U8) T. Jacob (Coptic, 83> cf. 82 and Arabic 153),
I Enoch 40:2-10, 69 f., T. Abr. 10 f., Apoc. Abr. 12 f. and Sefer Raziel, beginning.
See Günther, St. Paul's Opponents, pp. 172-298.
1 7 See p. 74 f,, 83 f., p. 129 rV, See also below, p. 226. See also Gen. R. 1:1.
JEWISH SECTARIAN TEXTS 189
ö
statements that a principal angel was God's helper in creation. * Philo
might provide some evidence for identification of the angel with a
divine helper in creation because angels can be allegorized as the
10
logos.
Adam traditions are especially important in this regard. We have
already seen that Philo identifies the heavenly man with the logos,
which is identified with God's archangel and principal helper in
creation. There is an extraordinary amount of Adam speculation in
apocalyptic and pseudepigraphical writings, often including descrip-
tions of Adam's heavenly enthronement and glorification. The tradi-
tions can be dated to the first century, if an early dating of enthronement
of Adam in the Testament of Abraham ch. 11 can be maintained.
Adam legends are certainly well ramified later in Jewish, Christian,
gnostic, Mandaean and other documents, and even appear at several
20
important junctures in the ascent texts of the magical papyri. As we
have already seen, the rabbis themselves record legends about Adam
even though they find some of this speculation dangerous, warning
21
specifically against considering Adam God's partner.
Angelic mediation in the giving of the Law is easy to find. It can be
seen in Jubilees (Jub. 1:27-3:7) as well as in the New Testament
(Gal. 3:19, Acts 7:38, 53, Heb. 2:2). We know that such a doctrine
is explicitly criticized by the rabbis, but without special reference to
"two powers" heresy.
J8
Some relationship between God's principal angel and His agent at creation may
be possible in traditions about the angel Adoil in II Enoch 25:1 f.
1!)
Logos is identified with an angel in Leg. All, iii 177; Conf. 28; Qui s Her. 205;
Som. i, 239; Cher, 3, and often but the identification is not stressed when discussing
the creation. Rather Philo concentrates on the relationship between the logos, the
anthropos and hiereus: Agr. 5 1 ; Quis Her. 119, Som. i, 215; Conf. 146, see also
Fug. 72, Vet, 83, QG i, 4, Conf. 41, Quis Her. 230-31. See also QG., 92, Conf. 62,
63 where all the themes converge.
20
See E. Peterson, "La libération d'Adam de Yanagke," RB, 1948 and the revised
edition, "Die Befreiung Adams aus der Anagke," in Frükirche, Judentums und Gnosis,
(Vienna: 1959). Also, see PGM, III, 146 f. where the magician announces that he is
Adam, the original father and calls upon the Gods Taö, Adönai, Michael, Souriel,
Raphael, and Abraxas. In III.211 f. the prayer to Apollo contains similar angelic
names while the magician calls Adönai, "Lord of the world."
21
For a fuller bibliography and documentary citations see Reitzenstein, Poimandres
(Leipzig: 1904); W. Bousset, Hmiptprohle?ne der Gnosis (reprint Göttingen: 1973);
A. Altmann, "The Gnostic Background of the Rabbinic Adam Legends," JQR, 1945;
G. Quispel, "Der gnostische Anthropos und die jüdische Tradition," Eranos Jahrbuch,
22 (1954); for helpful summaries of the primary source material see J. Fossum,
dissertation Utrecht and Tardieu, 3 Mythes Gnosiiques, p. 85-139; see above, notes
5 and 8 for further bibliography.
190 THE EXTRA-RABBINIC EVIDENCE AND CONCLUSIONS
22
See Robin Scroggs, The Last Adam (Philadelphia: 1966),
2?
> See especially below, p. 201 for a discussion of the "son of man" in the
Parables of Enoch where the title "messiah" occurs.
-1' See Gruenwald, Apocalyptic and Merkabah Mysticism.
JEWISH SECTARIAN TEXTS 191
in the next chapter, Tobit magnifies God as Father, Lord, and God on
account of the angel's appearance. Clearly the anthropomorphisms in
the Bible are being reinterpreted in a new context of angelophany.
The entire Enoch cycle, it should be pointed out, is intimately based
on theophany passages like Ez. 1 and Dan. 7:13, interpreted as
angelophanies. But the books are composite, making it difficult to date
some of the traditions to pre-Christian times. This is particularly
important with regard to the "Parables of Enoch" which record the
most systematic development of the "son of man" outside Christianity,
but are not free from the suspicion of being influenced by Christian
traditions. The "son of man" traditions will be discussed later. For
now it is important to point out that other traditions based on Dan.
7:13 can be found in the pre-Christian parts of Enoch. In I Enoch
14, for instance, Scholem notes an early version of the heavenly
journey which later becomes central to Merkabah mysticism. The
description of the first palace with its tesselated marble floor gleaming
like liquid is the basis for the tradition in b. Hag. 14b where R.
Akiba warns his compatriots not to say "water, water" on their heavenly
journey, lest they be injured. I Enoch 14 is also replete with imagery
taken from the Old Testament theophany scenes. The sight of the
palace with its tesseiation so frightens Enoch that he falls to the ground
and there beholds a vision:
And I beheld a vision, And lo! there was a second house greater
than the former, and the entire portal stood open before me, and
it was built of flames of fire. And in every respect it so excelled in
splendor and magnificence and extent that I cannot describe to you
its splendor and its extent. And its floor was of fire, and above it
were lightnings and the path of the stars, and its ceiling was also
flaming fire. And I looked and saw therein a lofty throne: its ap-
pearance was as crystal, and the wheels thereof as the shining sun,
and there was the vision of cherubim. And from underneath the
throne came streams of flaming fire so that I could not look thereon.
And the Great Glory sat thereon, and His raiment shone more brightly
than the sun and was whiter than any snow. None of the angels could
enter and could behold His face by reason of the magnificance and
glory, and no flesh could behold Him. The Flaming fire was round
about Him, and a great fire stood before Him, and none around
could draw nigh Him: ten thousand times ten thousand (stood) be-
fore Him, yet He needed no counsellor. And the most holy ones who
were nigh to Him did not leave by night nor depart from Him. And
until then I had been prostrate on my face, trembling: and the Lord
called me with His own mouth, and said to me: "Come hither, Enoch,
and hear my word." And one of the holy ones came to me and
192 THE EXTRA-RABBINIC EVIDENCE AND CONCLUSIONS
waked me, and He made me rise up and approach the door: and I
bowed my face downwards. 25
The scene is based on Dan. 7:9 together with Exodus 24 and Ez. 1.
The figure on the throne is the Ancient of Days, not the "son of man."
But there is extreme interest in describing how the divinity can have
human shape. The figure is called the "Great Glory/' which, as we
have already seen, is a technical term for the appearance of God on
the throne in Merkabah mysticism and has a similar use in Tobit. This
figure is called "Lord" by Enoch as it was by Tobit. The figure is
meant to be God manifest since the text states that He needs no
(i
counselor. ~ In I Enoch it is Enoch himself who serves as intercessor
for the "Watchers." In II Enoch 33:10 f. the angel Michael is men-
tioned as arch}stratego s and intercessor for the handwritings of the
fathers, Adam, Seth, Enoch, Cainan, etc. Of course, this is another
reconstruction of the heavenly judgment scene in Dan, Rather than
"the son of man" Enoch himself in I Enoch and Michael in II Enoch
are to function as intercessors in front of the throne. As in Philo,
men of extraordinary righteousness and purity (e.g., Moses, Melchi-
zedek and Levi) can actually particpate in the divine drama. In the
"Parables of Enoch," Enoch is identified as "the son of man." In any
event, it is not the angel or mediator figure, but the divine figure
on the throne in I Enoch, who has the major role, as does the Lord
of the Sheep in I Enoch 90.
There are some cases where angelic mediation can be seen in a
growing dualistic context. Usually, the primary figure is seen as the
opposition to a demonic figure like Satan, where he pleads the cause
27
of Israel as both heavenly advocate and intercessor.
In spite of this early evidence of traditions about a principal angel
or manlike figure, there is no way to document a heresy involving
the divine name as a separate angelic hypostasis in first century
dualistic contexts. Some of the least justifiable actions of YHWH
a» Î Enoch 14:15f.
2ti
The Greek text and II Enoch 33:-1 are quick to mention that this does not
exclude the logos, who accomplishes all things for Him, because all things of Go-d
are eternal, "not made with hands." It seems clear that the Greek texts have incor-
porated the same concerns we saw in Philo to explain how God can appear as a man
yet be beyond man's ken. The Greek texts remain just as sensitive to the problem of
anthropomorphism but can incorporate logos conceptions to deal with it, probably
arguing, as Philo did, that the logos is God himself, not merely a counselor.
2
7 E.g., Test. Lev.; Test. Dan. 5 f.; I En. 68; 89:76 cf. IQ M. 13:9 f.; Jud. 9;
Rev. 12:7. See J. G. Gammie, "Spatial and Ethical Dualism in Jewish Wisdom and
Apocalyptic Literature/' JBL, 93 (1974), 356-385.
JEWISH SECTARIAN TEXTS 193
:!0
J. T. Milik, "Milki-sedeq et Milki-rasha dans Its anciens écrits Juifs et
Chretiens," JJS, 4 (1972), 95-M4 and RB, 79 (1972), 77-97.
:!1
This is English rendering of van der Woude's transcription taken from
NT. Delcor, of), cit., 133.
•"*- "Le document de Qumran sur Melchizedek," RQ, 27 {1970), 343-378.
:i:s
T h e identification of Melchizedek with Elohim wouid certainly be anomalous,
but it is not totally out of the question, when one looks at the subsequent history of
tradition about this priest-king, ïn teg. All, hi, 81 Philo warns against imputing
plurality to God, while discussing Melchizedek. According to Sokolov's Slavonic
manuscript of II Enoch, Melchizedek was conceived and born miraculously (iii,
2,7-21*) and was taken up by Michael to the paradise of Eden for forty days during
the flood (hi, 28-29). There he is called "the great high priest, the Word of God,
and the power to work great and glorious marvels above all that have been"
(iii, 34), The seal of the priesthood on his breast was "glorious in countenance"
(iii, 19). After him another Melchizedek was to arise (iv, 6; iii, 37).
In the modalist controversy within the church, the Asian Theodotus called Mel-
chisedek a great unbegotten power who is mediator and intercessor for angels. (See
Hippoiytus Ref. 7:36, Epi, Huer 55:1, Philaster. Hder. 52, Pseudo-Ter. Adv Omn. 3 ) .
The teaching that Melchizedek was an angel was also known to Origen and Dldymus
according to Jerome, Epist. ûd Evangelium 73:2 (see Günther, p. 240). Later still,
a group of Melchizedekian heretics denied "that Melchizedek was a man and not
Christ himself" (Migne, P.G. 65, U 2 a ) . They argued the absurdity of the idea that
JEWISH SECTARIAN TEXTS 195
Obviously this, like the YHWH the lesser traditions we have seen,
is a reference to the angel of Ex. 23:21. It is evident that the figure is
a personification of the name itself. From the text it is quite clear that
Yahoel is God's vice-regent, second only to God himself, and is the
;!8
supreme figure in Jewish angelology.
The Apocalypse of Abraham is contemporary or earlier than the
first mention of "two powers" heresy in rabbinic literature, but was
probably itself not the target, since it is not clearly heretical and the
rabbis' earliest reports mention gentiles as the targets. This kind of
evidence indicates that the ideas about an angel carrying God's name
enjoyed a fairly wide distribution, only some of which was in heretical
circles.
In the "Parables of Enoch" there is a long excursus on the value
of the hidden, divine name, by which the world was created and
M)
which the "son of man" learns, '
The work is dated variously to pre-Christian times, to the first,
In the Sefer Yetzzra, written between the third and sixth centuries,
the whole creation is described as proceeding from the name of God.
2
In the Sefer ha-Qoma -* the ineffable name is expressly identified
with Metatron Yahoel. 4;î
In III Enoch, Yahoel is also named Y H W H the lessor (7, 12:5, 48).
Y H W H the lessor is also found in the gnostic Pistzs Sophia (ch. 7).
Thus, it seems very likely that, by the beginning of the second century
and back into the first century as well, there existed apocalyptic
speculations about the name of God as a mediator of creation which
probably was very early connected with the idea that this mediation
could also be portrayed by a principal angel.
Starting in the second century we see other evidence of speculation
about the name of God, used in the gnosticism, described by the church
fathers. Irenaeus, for instance, mentions that the Ophites used the
Hebrew divine names for the various archons, or angels of the
44
demiurge. This may very well be one kind of belief which the rabbis
The new material from Nag. Hammadi, especially from tractate 2, Is confirming a
distinct relationship with Ophism. See below, p. 249.
tö
Iren. I, 21:3. See G. Quispel, "Mandaers en Valentinianen," Nederlands Theo-
logisch Tijdschrijt, viii: 3 (1954), 144-8.
•'<> Orig. Contra Cehum 6:31. Chadwick, p. 347. Peterson (Eh Theos, p. 307)
links the phrase "first and second" with the idea that lao was identified with light
and speculates that the "second" might refer to the light which illuminates Hades at
night, as well as the light of the sun during the day (Vergil, Aen. VI, 641).
!
" See Acts 8:10; Justin Apology I 26, 3; Hippolytus Réfutât h, Vî, 9, 3-18, 7.
The authenticity of this tradition is called into question by Roland Bergmeier, "Zur
Frühdatierung samaritanischer Theologumena," JSf, V (1974), 121-53, especially
1.46 f., but the use of the tradition can be demonstrated in heretical Christianity in
any event. Its historicity is not the main concern.
•*8 See p. 95 f.
*iy See Meeks, The Prophet King, pp. 216-257.
JEWISH SECTARIAN TEXTS 199
14
200 THE EXTRA-RABBINIC EVIDENCE AND CONCLUSIONS
chief captain among the sons of God? Am I not Israel, the first
minister before the face of God?' And I called upon my God by
the inextinguishable name . . . But we have made a lengthy digression
in considering the matter of Jacob and using as evidence a writing
not lightly to be despised to render more credible the belief con-
cerning John the Baptist which maintains that he. . . being an angel,
took a body in order to bear witness to the light 52
Here it is an archangel of the power of the people of God who is
called Israel and is also identified with the patriarch Jacob. He was
created before all the works of creation and claims ascendancy over
Uriel on the basis of his victory in personal combat by which he
ostensibly possesses the divine name. To sum up the issues, as reported
by J. Z. Smith, the fragment is dominated by three themes; (1) the
lofty role of Israel (called Jacob, an angel of God, a ruling spirit,
a man who sees God, the first-born of all life, the archangel of the
power of the Lord, the heavenly chief captain, the high-priest before
the face of God); (2) the conflict between Jacob and Uriel, each
claiming ascendancy over each other; and (3) the myth relating to the
descent of the angel to a flesh-like existence. Although this material
is contained in a Christian source, no doubt its origin was Jewish
sectarianism. Nor is it the only evidence that traditions about angelic
keepers of the name were common in Jewish-Christianity. Cardinal
Danieiou cites considerable evidence that traditions associating Michael
and Gabriel with the name of God were recorded in Christian writings,
often with the titles transferred to Christ. r,:î
In this quick tour of apocalyptic and mystical literature we have
established certain things. First, it seems obvious that traditions similar
to the ones which the rabbis dismissed as "two powers" heresy in the
second century can be seen in sectarian literature of the first century.
However, just when and where the traditions become heretical is a
vexing question. It is certainly true that many of the traditions about
the angel of Y H W H would not have been taken as heretical by the
rabbis. For instance, there is no convincing evidence that Merkabah
mystics were ever called heretical, although the rabbis warned against
exegesis of Ezekiel as early as the compilation of the Mishnah. While
the evidence abounds for the existence of dangerous scriptural tradi-
02
J. Z. Smith, "The Prayer of Joseph," ibid., p. 256 f. See also Martin Hengel,
The Son of God, p. 48.
53
Danieiou, The Theology of Jewish Christianity, pp. 119-131, See also E. R.
Goodenough, "The Pseudo-Justinian Oratio ad Gntecos" HTR, 18 (1925), 185-200.
JEWISH SECTARIAN TEXTS 201
54
See Fossurn, p. 92, J. J. Collins, "The Son of Man and the Saints of the Most
High in the Book of Daniel," JBL, 93 (1974), 50-66 and H. L. Ginsberg, "Michael
and Gabriel," EJ, Fossum argues persuasively for Gabriel because in 10:13 the angel
speaks about Michael.
5r>5 See Altman, Cross and Miller, as cited on p. 184, n. 4.
202 THE EXTRA-RABBINIC EVIDENCE AND CONCLUSIONS
50
See Montgomery, Dan/el, ICC, p. 316. Recent publications appearing after
this manuscript was in press, suggest that Hnoch speculation may be quite old, older
than Daniel, and form the basis of the Daniel speculation. See below, n. 65 for the
evidence. F
57
Carsten Colpe, "huios ton anthropou," TDNT.
")8 This is adopted from the scheme of Lars Hartman, Prophecy Interpreted:
The Formation of Some Jewish Apocalyptic Texts and of the Eschatological Discourse
in Mark 13 (Uppsala: 1966).
59
See e.g., outside of the Parables in I Hnoch 47:1-48 where parts of the pattern
have been shuffled and some are missing.
JEWISH SECTARIAN TEXTS 203
carrying out the whole plan himself, (i0 in the Parables the "son of man"
is usually the instrument of God's justice. This fact only points out
the importance of the character of the "son of man" in the Parables.
But nowhere is it certain that the "son of man" is a title. We may
only have a series of traditions concerning Dan. 7:13.
In I En. 48:2 f. there is further description of this divine figure.
He is casually named messiah and he (or only his name and office)
are described as premundane, having been foreordained before the
Lord of Spirits created the stars. Never before in this material has the
figure been identified as the messiah, which leads many scholars to
assume Christian influence (whether friendly or polemical), or author-
ship. In I En. 70 and 71 Enoch and his name are elevated to become
the "son of man." He tours heaven, which contains the new paradise
(I En. 70:4) (the pardes'?) and is guided before the throne of the
Ancient of Days by Michael; whereupon Enoch himself is proclaimed
the "son of man." ('1 At the last judgment the "son of man" will be
brought before God and His name before the Ancient of Days. Because
of this parallelism between the name and function of the figure of
the "son of man," we are probably warranted in saying that from one
perspective the "son of man" is a pre-existent being—but not in every
respect, because the point of the story is to tell the mystical events
by which Enoch learns of his future role. It seems clear that the figure
lias been human and becomes both divine and messianic, although his
heavenly enthronement aspects are far better described than his earthly
tasks. There is no evidence that a separate human messiah is to bring
national redemption while this cosmic figure will bring cosmic justice.
The roots of the images in these verses should not concern us.
Whether they are closest to ancient Canaanite, Babylonian, or Persian
( 2
mythology is not specifically relevant. > Since the Prophets and the
book of Daniel, the traditions were squarely within Israelite thought
and underwent transformation's peculiar to Israelite culture. I Enoch
fKJ
The pre-Christian son of mua is integral part of the Baltmann thesis that the
son of man is a representative of pre-Christian, gnostic-salvation myth.
<>4 Ragnar Leivestad, "Exit the Apocalyptic Son of Man," NTS, 18 (1972), 243.
J, C. Hindley, "Towards a Date for the Similitudes of Enoch: An Historical Approach,"
NTS, 14, 551-65.
05
See Milik, "Problèmes de la littérature hénochique à la lumière des fragments
araméens de Qumran," HTR, 64 (1971), 333-78; "Turfan et Qumran: Livre des
Géants juif et manichéen," Tradition und Glaube: Das frühe Christentum in seiner
Umwelt: Festgabe für K. G. Kuhn (Göttingen: 1971), pp. 117-27. His new edition
of The Book of Enoch: Aramaic Fragments of Qumran Cave 4 (with the collaboration
of Matthew Black) (Oxford: 1976) suggests that Enoch is older than Daniel and
forms the basis of the Daniel speculation. The dating of the Son of Man title, however,
remains unaffected. See Matthew Black, "The Parables, of Hnoch (1 En. 37-71) and the
'Son of Man,' " Expository Times, 78 (1976), 5-8.
JHWISH SECTARIAN TEXTS 205
identified with the manlike figure or are granted immortality and use
the name of God to gain vindication for themselves and their followers.
s;0
J. M. Robinson and Helmut Koestcr, Trajectories Through Early Christianity
(Philadelphia: 1971).
206 THE HXTRA-KÀBBINIC EVIDENCE AND CONCLUSIONS
been no reason to preserve the statements, were they not from Jesus.
Furthermore, the title itself quickly went to disuse, superceded by
more understandable titles like "Son of God" and "Messiah"
(Christos). Yet, whether or not Jesus meant anything apocalyptic
in calling himself "son of man" has not been settled. A non-apocalyptic
possibility for the meaning of Jesus' "son of man" sayings must be
mentioned. It is possible that he ased the phrase in a self-referential
way only because it was a possible, self-referential Aramaic idiom,
having no direct relationship to the manlike figure of Daniel. «7 In
short, even accepting the argument which makes "son of man" an
authentic self-designation of Jesus does not clarify what Jesus might
have meant by it. One school of critics accepts the eschatological state-
ments as primary; another accepts the self-referential ones as primary.
All agree that neither the self-referential nor the eschatological state-
ments can be clearly distinguished from the perspective of the church.
Therefore some of the statements may have been attributed to Jesus
by Christians who had already accepted the titles and found it impossible
to imagine that Jesus may have thought of himself in other ways.
There is probably no possible historical solution to the question
of Jesus' self-consciousness. There is a greater chance of discovering
how various christoiogies developed.
It is clear that the "son of man" traditions refer back to Dan, 7:13,
which is a text important for "two powers" investigation. So we should
mention the uses of Dan. 7:9 f. in the New Testament. Certainly
the most interesting use of Dan. 7; 13 in the gospels for our purposes
(58
is its combination with Ps. 110. Ps. 110, the most quoted Old
Testament scripture in the New Testament, has recently been studied
fi7
Geza Vermes, "Appendix E: The Use of Bar Nasha/BarNash in Jewish
Aramaic," in Matthew Black, An Aramaic Approach to the Gospels and Acts (Oxford:
1967), pp. 310-330. However, criticism of this theory is persuasive, see J, Jeremias,
New Testament Theology (New York: 1971), p. 261, n. 1. J. A. Fitzmyer has reported
that BRNS3 is evidenced at Qumran as a designation for the collectivity "mankind"
or the individual belonging to a collectivity (i.e., II Qtg job 26:}). But there is no
evidence of its being used (a) as a surrogate for "I," (b) as a form of address, or
(c) as an eschatological title. The full evidence is forthcoming in "Methodology in
the Study oi the Aramaic Substratum o^ Jesus' Sayings in the New Testament/'
Jésus aux origines de la Christologie1 Bibliotheca ephemeridum theologicarum
lovaniensum, (Gembkmx: Ducalot, 1975).
«8 See Mk. 2:32 f., 8:56 f., 13:26, 14:62. Norman Perrin, A Modem Pilgrimage
in New Testament Christology (Philadelphia: 1974), has been very helpful in this
section.
JEWISH SECTARIAN TEXTS 207
by David Hay. (ii) Many N.T. uses stress Jesus' exaltation after death,
represented as a vindication by God, Other uses of the psalm stress
Christ's enthronement as the basis for ecclesiology or for a priestly
christo logy. But when used in connection with Dan. 7:13, the first
clause of psalm 110 was certainly a support for the christological
interpretation of the "son of man." No less, it served as testimony
to the supreme dignity of the one whom the Christians called "My
Lord" and promised vindication for the believers. The question is how
such a concept developed. It may be that messianic interpretations
already lay behind these scriptures when the Christians adopted them.
But we do not have any firm evidence for that. Rather all that is
necessary to be presupposed in the tradition is that Jesus be identified
with the second "lord" in Ps. 110:1. This identification would be
based on the Hebrew text, where both D DWNY, (my lord) and tetra-
grammaton, Y H W H , appears. Bousset had assumed that the use of
the euphemism, "Lord," for the tetragrammaton was not known in
Palestine in the first century. However, this theory has been challen-
ged. 7 0 It is at least possible that believers said "lord" twice in quoting
Ps. 110:1 in Hebrew in the first century. It is certainly true that
anyone speaking Greek or Aramaic would have used two "Lords" in
the psalm. This much seems sensible. But it is fascinating to speculate
further. We know that the ascension and heavenly enthronement of
Jesus was assumed on the basis of Ps. 110, which had the function of
an eschatological promise for the believer and a vindication which
countered Jesus' crucifixion. Might It be that the connection between
the earthly Jesus and the son of man was made because Jesus was
believed to have ascended to the throne in heaven—thus identifying
him with the manlike figure (BRNSD "son of man") who fought
against the unjust, and who was seated on His divine throne? Immor-
tality or resurrection were often stressed in reports of martyrdom, 71
(ii)
David M. Hay, Glory at the Right Hand: Ps. 110 in Early Christianity, SBL
monograph 18 (New York: 1973).
70
J. A. Fitzmyer, "Qumran Aramaic and the New Testament," NTS, 20 (1974),
390. See now, Martin Hengel, The Son of God, p. 77-83.
~l See G. W . E. Nickeisburg, Jr. Resurrection, ïm1 mortality, and Eternal Life in
Intertestamental Judaism (Cambridge: 1972). For the significant relationship between
martyrdom, resurrection and the story of the sacrifice of Isaac in Jewish tradition, see
Shalom Spiegel, The Last Trial: On the Legends and Lore of the Command to Abraham
to Offer Isaac as a Sacrifice: The Akedah. tr. J. Goldin (New York: 1967). Geza
Vermes, Scripture and Tradition in Judaism. (Leiden: 1961) and N . A. Dahl, "The
Atonement—An Adequate Reward for the Akeda?" in Neotestamenta et Semitîca
(festschrift M. Black) ed. Ellis and Wilcox (Edinburgh: 1969).
208 THE EXTRA-RABBINIC EVIDENCE AND CONCLUSIONS
while Philo wrote that men of special ability could mystically ascend
to participate la divine immutability. The novelty of some Christian
understandings would then have been to stress the divine title given to
Jesus on the basis of Ps. 110, and thereby to associate the martyred
messiah with the divine warrior who carried the name of God. While
only a hypothesis, it has two advantages over the gnostic savior hypo-
thesis. It does not need to predicate a well-defined but unevidenced
myth into which Jesus was fit. Rather it assumes that many different
traditions about mediators, human figures in heaven and angelic
mediators were eventually identified with Jesus, after he was believed
to have survived death and ascended to heaven. These traditions may
or may not have been associated with the messiah before Jesus. But
certainly Jesus' life provided one definite link with messianic expecta-
tions since he was crucified as "King of the Jews"—that is, as a
messianic pretender, even if he had no messianic consciousness, 7~
While the scriptural traditions with which Jesus was associated were
not "gnostic," the motif can certainly be said to be mythical in the
current, anthropological use oî that term. Before Christianity there
is evidence of many different exegetical traditions but no central,
single redemption myth. It looks as if the unity was reached by applying
all the traditions to Jesus.
As central and ancient as were these beliefs, they were by no means
the whole story. It is not my purpose to elaborate a theory of the
evolution of christologicai titles. But it should be pointed out that the
christological titles (and even Son of God) can be partially understood
as a combination of traditions of exegesis about various angelic figures
7;î
with messianic prophecies. All of these titles can be explained
7
- See the title essay in N. A. Dahl's recently translated The Crucified Messiah
and other Essays (Minneapolis: 1974).
7;i
Martin Hengel, The Son of God, argues that Son of God was not a purely
Hellenistic title. It would appear that in the Old Testament "My son" was a title of
the king while "son of God" originally denoted other gods, which became subservient
as angels under the pressure of biblical monotheism (see Bohrer, TDNT, "huios,"
347 f.). The singular form occurs only late for Old Testament references, in Dan. 3:25.
In the New Testament there are a few, uncertain traces of similar terminology.
Key. 2; 18 introduces Christ as "the son of God" with features similar to Dan, 10:5 f.
In Hebr. 7:3, Melkizedek is described as resembling the son of God. However,
much more often the christologicai title "son of God" is linked up with messianic
prophecies of the Old Testament—like Ps. 2:7 f. and 2 Sam. 7:14 f.—where God
calls the Davidic king, "my son." It seems likely that "sonship" developed both to
discuss Jesus' messianic mission and to define his relationship to the father. For
instance, in Paul, Hebrews and Johannine writings, the term 'son oi God' includes
the idea of pre-existence. It is used in connection with terms like "logos" and "image
JEWISH SECTARIAN TEXTS 209
of God" (Hebr. 1, Rom. 8:29, Col. 1:13-18, John 1:1-3, cf., John 1:1-18). Obviously,
many associations have become part of this title but it cannot be said to have
originated to express the pre-existence of Jesus. Like Kyrios and unlike Christos, the
term "Son of God" would have remained meaningful to people who were not aware
of its Jewish background. It should be noted that the divine connotation of "Son
of God" is one way of explaining the charge of blasphemy at the trial. See D.
Catchpole, The Trial of Jesus: a Study in the Gospels and Jewish Historiography
from 1770 to the Present Day (Leiden: 1971), pp. 72-148. "Son of God" has been
reported as a human title for the Messiah at Qumran by Milik, though the text has not
yet been published. See Fitarnyer, "Qumran Aramaic and the New Testament,"
NTS, 20 (1974), 382-407.
7lt
The strongest proponent of this idea is Davies, He Ascended into Heaven:
A Study in the History of Doctrine (1958), pp. 25, 185. See also- Gerhardt Lohfink,
Die Himmelfahrt Jesu: Untersuchungen zu den Himmelfahrts und Erhöhungstexten
hei Lukas (München: 1971), pp. 64, 191. Also Borsch, p. 383.
210 THE EXTRA-RABBINIC EVIDENCE AND CONCLUSIONS
Therefore God has highly exalted him and bestowed upon him the
name which is above every name, that at the name of Jesus every knee
should bow in heaven and on earth and under the earth, and that
every tongue confess that Jesus Christ is Lord to the glory of God
the father, T«
On the basis of his ascension and translation Jesus has been raised
higher even than the angels. The divine names and titles used by
II Isaiah have been transferred to Jesus. Furthermore, though this
occurs in the writings of Paul, which are certainly early (middle
first century) and earlier than much of the gospel material, there is
no reason to believe that Paul was the first to think of Jesus in this
manner. This section in Paul's writing bears all the characteristics
of a separate liturgical fragment which Paul inserted into his argument
because it was relevant to his discussion of patience and humility.
Note too that, true to this theme, the beginning of the psalm seems
to deny Jesus' equality with God: "Christ Jesus, who, though he
was in the form of God, did not count equality with God a thing to
7
be grasped." ? This represents a fairly early stage in the development
of christology, similar in many respects to Philo, because though tradi-
tions about the name of God were applied to Jesus, Jewish sensibilities
about the preservation of monotheism remained strong. In fact, Paul
himself seems to use a polemic against some kinds of first century
75
Anitra Kolenkow, 'The Coming and Ascent of a Heavenly Healer—Tobit and
Mark," a paper delivered to the SBL Gospel of John seminar, October, 1974.
™ Phil. 2:9-11.
" Phil. 2:6.
JEWISH SECTARIAN TEXTS 211
78
Gal. 3:19-20. See N. A. Dahl, "Widersprüche in der Bibel, ein altes hermeneu-
tisches Problem," Studia Theologie«, 25 (1971), 1-19.
7!)
For more detail on Paul's concept of angels see W. D. Davies, "A Note on
Josephus, Antiquities 15:136," HTR, 47 (1954); Bo Reicke, "The Law and the
World according to Paul," JBL, 70 (1951), 261-63; Fred Francis, "Visionary Disci-
pline and Scriptural Tradition at Colossae," Lexington Theological Quarterly 2 (1967) ;
F. Francis and W. Meeks, The Colossian Controversy (SBL: 1974); G. MacGregor,
"Principalities and Powers: The Cosmic Background of Paul's Thought," NTS, I
(1954), 22; Andrew John Bandstra, The Law and the Elements of the World (1964),
pp. 158-68; Edward Langton, The Angel Teaching of the New Testament (London:
n.d.); H. Berkhof, Christ and the Powers (Scottdale, Pa.: 1962); M. Jones, "St. Paul
and the Angels," Expositor, vii-35 (1918), 415.
«° See T. of Solomon 20:12-15, cf. ï Hnoch 61:10.
212 THE EXTRA-RABBINIC EVIDENCE AND CONCLUSIONS
RSWT. Paul uses such terms to stress the inferior status of the
celestial beings. It seemed reasonable to assume that the rabbis used
1
these terms, rather than the infrequent "two gods, ' for the same reason.
However, we shall also find language similar to "two gods" in the
New Testament. 8x i n Ephesians, Christ's victory over the angelic
powers is stressed. And in 1:21 it appears as if the Pauline author
describes Christ with the ineffable name of God:
They are measured by his strength and the might which he exerted
in Christ when he raised him from the dead, when he enthroned
him at his right hand in the heavenly realms, far above all govern-
ment and authority, all power and dominion, and any title of sover-
eignty that can be named, not only in this age, but in the age to
come. 82
Many "two powers" themes have come together. Jesus is raised from
the dead and enthroned as Christ far above the status of any man or
angel. He is sovereign in this age and the age to come, a claim
explicitly reserved for God according to rabbinic tradition. Further-
more, Christ has been exalted beyond any title that can be named,
implying that he has been awarded the secret name of God.
The process of transferring divine names and titles to Jesus is
especially characteristic of the Revelation of John where the identifica-
tion of the Christ with the tetragrarnmaton is even more obvious.
For instance, Rev. 22:12-13:
Behold I am coming soon bringing my recompense to repay every
one for what he has done. Ï am the alpha and the omega, the first
and the last, the beginning and the end. «n
We have seen that such titles from Isaiah and Deuteronomy are
particularly important in the rabbinic polemic. 8 4 These traditions
present some plausible targets for the rabbis' attack. The same can
be said of the Christ's victorious coming in Rev. 19.
Then I saw heaven opened, and behold, a white horse! He who sat
upon it is called Faithful and True, and in righteousness he judges
and makes war. His eyes are like a flame of fire and on his head
are many diadems; and he has a name inscribed which no one knows
but himself. He is clad in a robe dipped in blood, and the name by
which he is called is the Word of God. And the armies of heaven
Sl
See p. 216 f.
82 Eph. 1:20 f. according to NEB.
*•"* Rev. 22:12-13.
*» See p. 60 f„ 84 f.
JEWISH SECTARIAN TEXTS 213
arrayed in fine linen white and pure, followed him on white horses.
From his mouth Issues a sharp sword with which to smite the nations
and he will rule them with a rod of iron; he will tred the wine press
of the fury of the wrath of God the almighty. On his robe and on
his thigh he has a name inscribed, King of Kings and Lord of
Lords. Si-
Many different images are jumbled together in this description.
Divine warrior imagery is prominent but the divine warrior has been
identified with the messiah (Ps. 2) and Jesus, based on the "son of
man" tradition in Daniel. Furthermore, many divine titles are applied
to the figure: "true and faithful," "King of Kings," "Lord of Lords"
are all divine attributions in Judaism. Lastly and more importantly, he
has appropriated the ineffable name, which is identical with "Word
of God" (v. 13). On this basis, it seems safe to consider that many
Christians identified the Christ with God's principal angel, who carried
the divine name, because of his resurrection.
It is in this context that we should see the arguments in the Epistle
to the Hebrews that Jesus is more sublime a mediator than the angels
or Moses. In Hebrews there is no complete polemic against angel
worship. Rather Christ, as "Son" (1:4-2:10), is reputed to be better.
Significantly the Son is reputed to be the "Elohim" enthroned in
Ps. 45:7 (Heb. 1:8). The notion that the Lord will rule the world to
S6
come is transferred to Christ (2:5). The book is probably directed
against some Christians who did not see Jesus' role as unique, rather
as merely one more example of a special intercessor who had been
taken into the presence of God.
These ascension and theophany themes, placed in a polemical
setting, show up in the Gospel of John. In John 6:46 the gospel
states: "No one has ever seen God, except His son," which amounts
to a new interpretation of Ex. 33:20 in the Sinai theophany. We saw
that the solution to the contradiction between God's appearance to
the elders at Sinai (Ex. 24:10 f.) and the statement that "no one can
see Him and live" (Ex. 33:20) was the purpose of the rabbinic and
Philonic exegesis of the passage. In Philo's case, reconciling the contra-
diction necessitated positing a second divine figure. In the rabbinic
87
case, it occasioned a polemic against a second figure. In the Johannine
85 Rev. 19:11-16.
S(
* This seems related to the rabbinic insistence that the God oi Israel will rule
in the age to come as well. See p. 60 f.
87
Feder Borgen, Bread from Heaven (Leiden: 1965), p. 415. Also see Odeberg,
The Fourth Gospel and John 3:3-13. One should note the similarity to Abahu's com-
214 THE EXTRA-RABBINIC EVIDENCE AND CONCLUSIONS
ment against the person -who attempts to go to heaven or who calls himself the
son of man:
R. Abahu said: ff a man say to you "I am God," he is a liar; if (he says,
"I am) the son of man," in the end people will laugh at him; if (he says)
"I will go up to heaven, he says so, but shall not perform it." (j Taan. 65b).
In Abahu's time, Christianity of the gnostic or even Johannine type, is the most
likely referent for the heresy,
88
John 12:37 f according to the NEB.
s!)
See McNamara, T.argiim and Testament, p. 98 f. and p. 50 above. Also Is. 12:42
for a discussion of the targumic background for these traditions.
JEWISH SECTARIAN TEXTS 215
™ See R. Brown's article in ST, 26 (1965), 545-73 for a discussion of these texts
!
>t Namely John 1:1, 18; 20:28; Rom. 9:5; Heb. 1:8; 2 Pet. 1:1.
216 THE EXTRA-RABBINIC EVIDENCE AND CONCLUSIONS
»2 John 10:33.
o;i
It has been suggested that underlying this passage are several traditions of
agency and judgment on the basis of Deut. 19:17, Ex. 21:6, 22:9- See Brown, p. 409-
But the full extent of the issues cannot be taken up here.
JEWISH SECTARIAN TEXTS 217
the phrase "son of God" means more than this basic designation and that
the Old Testament reference had found fulfillment in Jesus. 9 3 What
is important for our purposes is to see that by the time of the Gospel
of John, the Jewish community is already described as opposing
Christianity on the issue of the divinity of Jesus. It was the divinity of
Jesus, rather than the messianic claim (though both were issues),
that is portrayed as separating the two communities. The Jews criticize
the Christians of "ditheism," rather than "two powers" which also
foreshadows a christological problem in later Christianity.
Some of the social bases of the opposition between Jew and Christian
can also be seen. The Johannine gospel reflects a time when the
cleavage between Jews and Christians had become irremediable. This
must refer to the end of the first century, although John explicitly
says that the hostility started during the time of Jesus (see, e.g., 12:42).
The gospel reports that Jews were already applying ostracism to the
Christian community. If anyone should confess Jesus as mess iah,
according to Jn. 9:22, he was excluded from the synagogue. 94 We
already have good evidence about the doctrinal and exegetical issues
that separated Jew from Christian. Now some of the social con-
sequences can be seen. Lou Martyn has made the very cogent sug-
gestion that the Johannine texts refer to the imposition of the Birkat
ha-miritm, the curse against sectarians which was expanded in this
period to include the minim. 95
But the Christian community is also very bothered by the Jewish
reaction, for the gospel contains an anti-Jewish polemic of extreme
ferocity, culminating in the charge that the Jews are offspring of the
devil, while Jesus and his followers are from God. (8:42 f.) This
extreme, opposing dualism in the fourth gospel seems parallel to the
highly irritated social situation and suggests that such dualism may
sometimes arise out of situations of severe social conflict. More can
be said about the correlation between polemic and dualism when
discussing the extreme gnostics of succeeding cenutries. 9(i
What is most important is that the New Testament attests to
traditions which, by the methodological assumptions necessary in
1
See, e.g., J. Robinson & H. Koester, Trajectories through Early Christianity (Phila-
delphia: 1971).
2
W, Michaelis, Zur En gehe-histologie in Urchristentum; Werner, The Formation
of the Christian Dogma (London: 1957), cf., Barbel, Christos Angelos (Bonn: 1941),
see p. 186 n. 8.
:î
See Barbel, p. 47, n. 4.
* Sim. 8, 3, 3.
5 See Sim. 8, 3, 3 and 5, 6, 4.
6 Sim. 5> 2-7; 9, 6, 3-6; 9, 10, 4; 8, 2, 5; 8, 4, 3; 9, 7, 1. For a more detailed
exposition of the relationship between the angel in Hermas and the angel of Y H W H
see H. Moxnes, "God and His Angel in the Shepherd of Hermas," Studia Theologica,
THE CHURCH FATHHRS 221
Justin, the gentile Christian, is the one church father whose relation-
ship to the "two powers controversy" has been noted previously by
several scholars. 7 Justin Martyr was born at the beginning of the second
century in Shechem, then called Flavia Neapoüs, in Samaria. He called
himself a Samaritan, which meant only that he was descended from
people living in that part of the country and not part of that religious
8 9
sect, because he stated that he was uncircumcized. The details of
Justin's life add evidence for the relationship we have already suspected
between Samaritans and early gentile Christianity. Justin's Dialogue
with Trypho also evinces real polemical use of almost all the scriptural
exegesis which the rabbis thought dangerous.
The setting for the Dialogue was Ephesus whence Justin had mi-
grated in his Christian mission. The date for the Dialogue must have
corresponded closely with the Bar Kokhba Revolt, for Justin mentions
it often 10 and Trypho is described as a Jewish fugitive who escaped
from the turmoil.
Justin's use of midrashic traditions has sometimes been taken as
evidence that the Dialogue is fictional, serving as a purely literary
framework for presenting Justin's views. u Yet it certainly reflects
one side of the debate between Judaism and Christianity in the early
second century, whether the immediate incident be wholly fact, em-
bellished incident, or pure fiction.
The clearest parallel between Justin and the enemies of the rabbis
has been mentioned before. *- By means of Gen. 19:24 Justin procèdes
to show that a second divine figure, Christ, is responsible for carrying
out divine commands on earth:
"The previously quoted Scriptural passages will make this evident
to you," I replied. "Here are the words: 'The sun was risen upon
the earth, and Lot entered into Segor. And the Lord rained upon
28 (1974), 49-56. He shows that language normally used of God, e.g., as the sender
of angels, has been transferred to the principal angel.
7
Several scholars have pointed out Justin's relationship to the aggada. See A. H.
Goldfahn, justinus Martyr und die Agada, (Breslau: n.d.). Friedländer, "Patristische
und talmudische Studien." Büchler has further emphasized the relevance of Justin
for the two powers controversy around Sepphoris & Tiberius, see Minim. Also Gins-
berg, Die Aggada hei den Kirchenvätern,
« Dial, 120.
!> Dial 29.
W Dial. 108; Apol. Ï, 33, for example.
H- E.g., Weissäcker, Jahrbuch für Theo!., 13 {1867), p. 63.
'12 See p. 13 f. and p. 118.
222 THE EXTRA-RABBINIC EVIDENCE AND CONCLUSIONS
Sodom brimstone and fire from the Lord out of Heaven, And He
destroyed these cities and all the country round about.' "
Then the fourth of the companions who remained with Trypho
spoke up: "It must therefore be admitted that one of the two angels
who went down to Sodom, and whom Moses in the Scriptures calls
Lord, is different from Him who is also God, and appeared to
Abraham."
"Not only because of that quotation," I said, "must we certainly
admit that, besides the creator of the universe, another was called
Lord by the Holy Spirit. For this was attested to not only by Moses,
but also by David, when he said: 'The Lord said to my Lord: Sit Thou
at My right hand, until I make Thy enemies Thy footstool,' and in
other words: 'Thy throne, O God is forever and ever; the sceptre of
Thy kingdom is a sceptre of uprightness. Thou hast loved justice,
and hated iniquity; therefore God, Thy God hath annomted Thee
with the oil of gladness above Thy fellows." (Ps. 45:7-8). is
It is a Jew, not Justin, who admits that another divine being, "The
Lord," was present at the destruction of Sodom and Gomorah, and
that this divine being was different from God. From our previous
discussion, there is no reason to doubt that such heterodox Jews
existed as early as Philo, Justin only endeavored to prove that this
second divinity is the Christ. It is significant that the angelic figure
is accepted by the Jew—only his messianic status is questioned. This
is another piece of evidence that Christianity was the first to connect
the mcssiah and the principal angel. In this place he relies primarily
on the various descriptions of vindication and enthronement found in
the Psalm texts. Subsequently in the Dialogue, he relies on the various
theophany texts where a man-like figure appears to the Israelites and
their prophets: Gen. 31:10-14 (ch. 5 8 ) ; Gen. 32:22-31 (ch. 5 8 ) ;
Gen. 35:6-10 (ch. 5 8 ) ; Ex. 2:23; Ex. 3:l6, 3:2-4 and Gen. 35:7
(ch. 60). His conclusion is:
When the Scripture here states that an angel of the Lord appeared
to Moses, and then announced that He is Lord and God, it refers
to the same person who is identified In many of our earlier quotations
as the minister to God who is above the world and above whom
there is no God. 14
Since Justin understands the appearance of God in Jacob's dreams,
wrestlings and even at the burning bush as a single consistent figure,
he is able to promote both the independent personality of the being
13 Dhd, 56.
u Dial, 60 end and 61.
THE CHURCH FATHERS 223
manifested and his divine nature. I 5 Like Philo Justin calls the logos
another God (heteros theos), distinct m number, if not in essence,
(ch. 56). The sharply drawn personality of this manifestation (together
with the doctrine of the incarnation) is the element which most
distinguishes Justin's concept of logos from Philo's. But, as Gooden-
ough has persuasively argued, both Justin and Philo should be seen
as evidencing examples of the same Hellenistic Jewish traditions. ^
Like Philo, Justin believes that the logos is an angel in that it is a
power (dynam/s) radiating from God. Like the angels it has freedom
of choice, but unlike the angels, Justin's logos has self-direction,
(ch. 88). Therefore, although Justin implies that the logos is the
same as an angel, he prefers to emphasize its distinctiveness in ways
that never occurred to Philo.
As further evidence that these traditions had a background in
Hellenistic Judaism before they were put to Christian use, Goodenough
shows that most of the titles applied to the logos by Justin are the same
as those used by Philo and other Hellenistic Jewish writers: theos,
kyrios, angelos, dynamis, amtolë, lithcu petra, arche, bernera (phos),
sophid, anërs anthröpos} Israel, Jacob etc.: l~
As Justin says:
"So my friends," I said, "I shall show from Scripture that the God
has begotten of Himself a certain rational power as a beginning be-
fore all other creatures. The Holy Spirit indicates this power by
various titles, sometimes the Glory of the Lord, at other times, Son
or Wisdom or Angel or God or Lord or Word. He even called him-
self commander-in-chief when he appeared in human guise to Josue,
the son of Nun." is
1
To substantiate the claim of the logos s primacy in the divine eco-
nomy, Justin points to the grammatical plural referring to God in
Gen. 1:26 and Gen. 3:22. 1 9 After this he adduces passages to support
the incarnation from the virgin birth to the ascension. 20 Of course,
the argument is not well received by his Jewish opponents, even those
who admitted the existence of the second power, and Justin is required
15
E. R. Goodenough, The Theology of Justin Martyr; An Investigation into the
Conceptions of the Earliest Christian Literature and its Hellenistic and JuddJstic
Influences (Jena: 1923), p. 143 f.
10
E. R. Goodenough, The Theology of Justin Martyr, p. 147 f.
17
E. K. Goodenough, The Theology of Justin Martyr, p. 168-172.
i* Dial. 61, p. 244.
i» Dial. 62.
20 Dial. 63-65.
224 THK EXTRA-RABBINIC KVIDliNŒ AND CONCLUSIONS
It is likely that the first fixed copy of the rabbinic traditions in the
Mekhilta (which seems to come from exactly this time, as indicated
23
by internal evidence, ) was a response to people like Justin who were
promulgating their doctrine of the Christian savior.
As was just concluded, Justin did not invent the arguments he used,
nor was he the first to use them. The rabbinic texts, however, begin
to appear at the time in which Justin was alive and reflect enemies of
Judaism like Justin who were contemporary with the Bar Kochba
revolt. 24
Several traditions corresponding to the rabbinic ones are found
2:>
in another second century church father, Theophilus of Antioch.
His relationship with midrashic traditions has been noticed before, but
no conclusions have previously been drawn about his relationship to the
"two powers" controversy. He too uses Christ as equivalent to logos,
on the basis on John 1, but he uses several interesting scriptural quo-
tations to prove his point. 2f> He witnesses to the traditions we saw in
Philo in which the logos is described as God's "place:"
Since the logos is God and derived his nature from God, whenever
the Father of the Universe wills to do so, He sends him into some
7
place where he is present and is heard and seen. ~
Further, after claiming that another title for the logos is "light," Theo-
philus could posit the idea that the logos helped God in the process
of creation:
The unique spirit occupied the place of light and was situated between
the water and the heaven so that, so to speak, the darkness might not
communicate with the heaven which was nearer to God, before God
said: "Let there be light." 28
-•'i See p. 47 f.
21
We know, of course that Christian gentiles were not the only gentiles to listen
to the words of Jewish scriptures. Many people came to hear the scriptures react in
synagogues, Judaism of that day had attracted many interested observers, even though
it had not undertaken as zealous a proselytizing program as had Christianity. There is
considerable evidence that Christian success in part depended on the attraction of
that faith to gentiles already conversant with Judaism but unable to become completely
Jewish either because they feared circumcision or because some Jews put other
constraints and restrictions upon them. So we must not rule out the God-fearers
or sebomenoi as the gentiles in these texts, even though we have no independent
texts from them. See Paul Donahue, dissertation, Yale 1974.
25
Barbel, Christos Angelos (Bonn: 1941), p, 61 f.
26
See Theophilus Ad Autolycum T, 3; H 22; also Gen. 1:26 is used in II, 18.
27
Ad Autolycum 2:22.
2S
Ad Autolycum 2:13.
226 THE EXTRA-RABBINIC EVIDENCE AND CONCLUSIONS
For him, "In the beginning," the first words of Genesis, has the
meaning of "by means of the beginning," -° which is yet another name
for the logos and characterizes it as Lord and agent of God in the
creation. Traditions like this which have Philonic antecedents may well
be the kind of doctrine opposed by use of the tradition about Ishmael
and Akiba.
However, he is much opposed to those who can derive a multiplicity
of gods in creation:
And Moses, who lived many years before Solomon, or rather the
Logos of God speaking through him as an instrument, says: "In the
beginning God made heaven and earth." (Gen. 1:1) First he men-
tioned beginning and creation and only then did he introduce God,
for it is not right to mention God idly and in vain (id. Ex. 20 : 3).
For the divine Sophia knew in advance that some persons were going
to speak nonsense and make mention of a multiplicity of non-existent
gods. Therefore, in order for the real God to be known through his
work and to show that by his logos God made heaven and earth and
what is in them, he said: "In the beginning God made heaven and
earth." Then after mentioning this creation, he gives an explanation:
"And the earth was invisible and formless and darkness was above
the abyss and spirit of God was borne above the water" (Gen.
I :2).ao
Theophilus does not identify his opponents. But he talks about them
as if they, to use the rabbinic term, believe in "many powers in heaven."
His use of Gen. 1 : t sounds like the debate between Ishmael and Akiba,
or at least, the ways in which Ishmael and Akiba's exegesis was under-
stood by later rabbis. :*i This points out that someone whom the rabbis
would have called a believer in "two powers" and who believed in a
divine partner in creation nevertheless opposed other traditions about
the creation which he described as "many powers." It would not be too
rash to attempt to identify the "many powers" groups with the varieties
of gnosticism and Jewish Christians that elaborated grand schemes of
the cosmic spheres, inhabited by myriads of angels.
Theophilus also opposes the idea that two different gods were
involved in creation—one creating man, therefore masculine in nature;
the other creating woman, therefore feminine in nature:
You shall be like Gods—so that no one would suppose that one
god made man and another made woman, He made the two together.
Moreover, He formed only man from the earth so that thus the
20 Ibid,
30
Ad Autolycum II, 10.
THE CHURCH FATHERS 227
^ See p. 74 f.
152
Ad Autolycum, II, 28. See the pseudo-Clementine literature as possible reference
for the male-female division. Also, p. '123 f. for a survey of a variety of gnostic
writings.
;!;i
See p. 84 for examples of this use of Dt. 32.
M See E. R.. Goodenough, The Theology of Justin Martyr (Jena: 1923) for the
possibility that Theophiius and Justin were influenced by a type of Hellenized
Judaism somewhat like Philo's but less sophisticated and philosophical. See also his
"Pseudo-Justinian 'Oratio ad Graecos,'" HTR, 18 (1925), 185-200.
aB
Keligionsgeschichtliche Studien, I, p. 61 f.
30 Iren., Adv. Haer. I, 18,3-19,1-
228 THE EXTRA-RABBINIC EVIDENCE AND CONCLUSIONS
Ex. 33:20 is the most relevant to us. 37 W e have seen it occur often
in rabbinic and Phiionic exegesis, where it both contradicted Ex. 24:10
and supplied the idea that the God manifested at Sinai showed mercy
as well as justice. It is possible that the theme of justice, as well as the
inferiority of the demiurge, appealed to the gnostics. But such an
argument is not mentioned by Irenaeus as significant for gnostic
purposes. When it was manifested in Phiionic and rabbinic doctrines,
the basic structure of the argument involved a second figure present
at the theophany. We cannot be sure that these gnostics were "two
powers" heretics.
However, when Irenaeus defends Christianity against the Marcionite
gnostics, :*s he himself uses "two powers" traditions. Jesus came from
the Father, being foretold by the prophets in the following verses:
Ps. 110:1, Gen. 19:24, Ps. 45:7, Ps. 82:1 and Ps. 50:1. By quoting
these passages he tries to show that the Old Testament made mention
of both the Christ (as Lord) and Father (as God)—though, at the
same time, uniquely one true God. We are familiar with the use of
Ps. 110 by the New Testament and Gen. 19:24 by the rabbis and
Justin. The latter proved that the Son had received power to judge the
Sodomites. Two of the new Psalm references—namely Ps. 45:7 and
Ps. 82:1 are similar to Ps. 110 in that they describe an enthronement
scene, which is taken to be the enthronement of the Son in heaven.
Ps. 50:1 is more significant because it occurs as dangerous scripture
:ii)
in a late passage in amoraic midrash along with Jos. 22:22 and Jos.
24:19. There, the form of the tradition was different enough from the
surrounding context to make us suspicious of its being Independent of
R. Yohanan and R. Simlai, brought in by the editor because of the
analogous subject matter. Here we have evidence that at least one
of those added passages, namely Ps. 50:1, was used quite a bit earlier
than the third century witness which the rabbinic text gives us. There
is no specific evidence to demonstrate that the other passages were used
as early as Ps. 50:1 was. But Jos. 22:22 has exactly the same string of
divine names, as Ps. 50:1—El, Elohim, YHWH—so it is equally
likely to have been used as proof of plurality. Notice that Irenaeus
uses the passage merely to prove that the Son is one with the Father.
;iT
Gen. 1 has been discussed several times before. It was used by so many groups
to so many different purposes that we can conclude little from its occurrence here.
38 Adv. Haer. Ill, 6, 1-4.
39
See p. 126 f. Ps. 45:7 is used to prove that the Son is to be called Iilohim in
Heb. 1:8 (see p. 213) and is also used by Justin (see p. 222).
THE CHURCH FATHERS 229
42
Tert. Adv. Pn/xens.
• t:i Chapter X I I I .
' u H e says: "God forbid! there are only two gods in number," in a manner like
Elisha b. Abuya, (ch. 3).
•'5 Kelly, p. 116.
48
Hippolytus, Ref. 7, 36, See p. 194 n, 33.
iT
De tr'tn. 30, cfuoted from Kelly, p. 117.
•*8 Hippolytus Ref. IX, i l f.
THE CHURCH FATHERS 231
century, even when we can only elate the earliest rabbinic recension
of these arguments to the second century. In comparing the use of the
terms of the polemic in rabbinic and Christian settings, it has seemed
logical to assume that "two gods" is a better term for battling with
heretics, while "two powers" is better for instructing the faithful.
If so the change from "two gods" to "two powers" in rabbinic writings
would signal a change in the function of the tradition. It would have
been done by rabbis more interested in warning their constituents
than actually in battling the heretics.
CHAPTER FOURTEEN
MARCION
Only when the scope of the "two powers" controversy has been
outlined within both the Christian and Jewish communities, can one
hope to approach the figure of Marcion. Certainly he is a key figure
in the debate concerning dualism. The complexities that attend serious
study of Marcion might justify a whole book on this aspect of his
thought. Again we are in the position of having to deal with issues
very selectively, primarily in order to date the rabbinic evidence, in
the hope that some of the issues ignored or only touched upon now
can be investigated more hilly at a later date.
Marcion has been seen as a prime candidate for the rabbinic polemic
against two powers. l However, we have already seen evidence that the
controversy has roots that go back considerably earlier than he. It is
growing clear that the rabbinic texts present us with a palimpsest of
different traditions. Yet the Marcionite polemic has certain charact-
eristics which will affect our identification of the targets of the rabbinic
polemic. We shall see that, although he and his followers were partici-
pants in polemics, Marcion's method makes it unlikely that he himself
could have been the original target of the rabbinic charges. In studying
Marcion, then, we shall uncover merely one more layer of the develop-
ment of the polemic, not the origin of the issue.
In his Letter to the Phillipians (7:1) Polycarp of Smyrna warned
that he who denied that there can be either judgment or resurrection
should be considered "the first-born oi Satan." We realize that such
issues were characteristic of both rabbinic and early Christian com-
munities. By the time oï Irenaeus, a legend had developed that Marcion
had asked Polycarp for recognition as bishop only to be rebuffed by
2
the words "I recognize you—as the first-born of Satan!"
The term ftfirst-born of Satan" has a Hebrew equivalent (BKWR
STN) which seems to have had a similar and contemporary use within
Jewish exegesis—as a term of reproach for someone who did not
1
See Marmorstein, Background, pp. 141-204.
2
Adv. Haer,, III 3, 4.
MARCION 235
;
* b. Yeb. 16a, j . Yeb. 3a.
4
See N . A. Dahl, "Der Erstgeborene Satans und Der Vater des Teufels (Polyk
7:1 and John 8:44)," in Apophoreta (Berlin: 1964), pp. 70-84. See p. 81 f., p. 255.
5 See p . 173 f. Philo in Post. 35, 38 f., 42, 43, 45; Det. 32, 68, 78, 103; Fug. I 64.
See also Armenian Adam 63. 64,
ß
See Harnack, Marcion; Das Evangelium vom fremden Gott. Eine Monographie
zur Geschichte der Grundlegung der katholischen Kirche (Leipzig: 2nd ed., 1924).
In Harnack's opinion, based on the reports of Irenaeus, Marcion believed that Christ's
function was to be judge at the end of the world, redeeming the good men from
among the living and from the grave. If so, this would have been an idea he held
in common with orthodox Christianity.
7
Cf., see ïren., Haer., Ï, XXV, 1; Origen, Contr. Cels.} IV, 10 and E. C. Blackman,
Marcion and his Influence (London: 1948), p. 102.
8
Marcion was not done in this; the Cainite gnostics also had such a belief, as
noted previously, p, 82 f.
236 THE EXTRA-RABBINIC EVIDENCE AND CONCLUSIONS
model for a hypothesis about mutual dependence later on. •'> Previously
in this discussion, it has always seemed more plausible to reconstruct
the transmission of a tradition from an original context in Judaism
into Christianity. From Marcion onwards, the case is no longer clear.
Since Marcion is primarily a Christian heretic, and since he represented
fully as much a danger to the Christian community as to the Jewish
one, the original source of the defense zgz'mst him should remain
open. If the rabbis were concerned with Marcionite theology they might
have been dependent on the church fathers for their defense against
him. It is also possible that each community developed its defense
against Marcion independently.
We know about Marcion's doctrines from various polemics against
him within the church fathers. Justin probably wrote the earliest treatise
devoted solely to discrediting Marcion. Although scholars have detected
parts of it la Irenaeus' discussion of Marcion, Justin's work has not
survived intact. Irenaeus, in turn, wrote little as compared to the
systematic work by Tertuliian afterwards. Therefore, most of: the
evidence about Marcion is not contemporary with him and may testify
not to Marcion's own doctrine but to what Marcion's later adherents
believed as well as the extent to which the church fathers were willing
to villify their opponents. Justin Martyr is the first to mention him,
saying:
One Marcion, a man of Pontus, who is even now alive, teaching
those who believe in him to pay honor to a different god, greater
than the creator; and this man has by the assistance of demons caused
many of every nation to utter blasphemies denying the God who made
this universe and professing that another, a greater than He, has
done greater things. 10
Irenaeus said that Marcion was a follower of Cerdo and that both
taught that the god discussed in Torah is just or righteous [dikaios)
but that he is not the father of Jesus, who was descended from an
ll
unknown and wholly good (agathos) god. The Old Testament god
is "just" or "righteous" in the sense of being the administrator of
justice—simply paying men what they deserve for their actions. Besides
this retributive aspect he is also the creator of the world. On the
other hand, the New Testament god is good in the sense of being
!)
See beiow, p. 245 f.
10
Apology, 1:26.
11
Iren., Haer., I, XXV, 1. Since Marcion is a true dualist, I have chosen not to
capitalize his references to biblical divinity.
MARCION 237
12
"Quod et nunc rnulti et maxime haeretici," Adv. Marc. 1:2,
13
See Harnack, Marcion, pp. 188-92. Apelles' god has a single power as described
in Hplph,, Haer., 44, Î. His principal angel, like the logos of Philo, is called deuteros
theos in Hipp.. Ref., X, 20.
238 THE EXTRA-RABBINIC EVIDENCE AND CONCLUSIONS
14
Harnack, Marcion, pp, 188-92. In his strict adherence to the principle that the
Oid Testament prophecies refer to events congruent with their context, Marcion had
a rather modern perspective on the Old Testament.
15
Ter. Adv. Marc, V, 18; see Harnack, Marcion, p. 260*.
L' <> Harnack, p. 260. Ter. Adv. Marc, II, 13 f., 24 and frequently.
MARCION 239
1T
brother Abel is (Gen. 4:9). He must descend in order to see what
the outcry of Sodorn and Gomorrah signifies (Gen. 18:21). 1S Marcion
further points out that the Old Testament god does and says many
contradictory things, showing that he is inconstant. For instance, he
repents. 19 Now these passages turn out to be generally similar to the
scriptural passages used by the critics of the Torah against whom both
the rabbis and Philo poiemicized. But they are not used by Marcion to
develop "two powers" arguments.
In fact, Marcion seems to agree with the rabbis that one god speaks
through the whole of the Jewish canon. The rabbis would say that
God is both merciful or just. Marcion would say that he is by nature
20
just but this would include being cruel on occasion. However much
the rabbis disagreed with his opinion of the Old Testament and the
character of the divinity described therein, they would not have used
"two powers" arguments to defeat him. Marcion himself, in the
context of his own thought, finds principal support from the sayings
of Jesus in Lk 16:13, (Mt. 6:24) and Lk 6:43 ( M t 7:18) which warn
against serving two masters or against a divided household. 2 i
Accordingly, rabbinic and Mardonite beliefs appear similar enough
to Tertullian that he sometimes groups them both together:
It is now possible for the heretic to learn, and the Jew as well, what
he ought to know already, the reason for the Jew's errors: . . . --
Also:
Let the heretic now give up borrowing poison from the Jew—the
asp as they say, from the viper: let him from now on belch forth the
slime of his own particular devices, as he maintains that Christ was
a phantasm: except that this opinion too will have had other inven-
tors, those so-to-speak premature and abortive Mardonites whom the
apostle John pronounced antichrists, who denied that Christ was
come in the flesh but not with the intention of setting up the law of
a second god [alterius dens']—else for this too they would have been
censured (by the apostle)—but because they had assumed it incredible
that God (should take to him human) flesh. 23
17
Harnack, p. 269*. This resembles the gnostic arguments reported by Irenaeus,
See p. 227 f. It is opposed by the rabbis, see p. 57.
18
See Harnack, p. 269*. This may explain some of the language of the Targumim,
p. 84 f., p- 373 f.
li)
Harnack, p. 268 f. See, e.g., Gen, 6:6,
20 Harnack, p. 271*.
21 Harnack, p. 260*.
- 2 Adv. Marc, III, 7, Evans, I, 187.
M Ter., Adv. Marc, 111, 8; (Evans, I, p. 191).
240 THE EXTRA-RABBINIC EîVIDENCE AND CONCLUSIONS
their battles with heretics. It seems most likely, however, that Tertuliian
is trying to reinterpret Deut. 32:39 because it is a scriptural passage
Marcion himself used, sa l n Marcion's system, the statement of Dt.
32:39 can only be said by the inferior god of the Old Testament.
Tertuliian is trying to prove that the Old Testament God is good as well
as just. Notice that in doing so he promulgates a distinction between
Y H W H and God, denying only the opposition between the powers.
Marcion used Dt. 32:39 to show the ignorance and inferiority of the
god of the Jews. Tertuliian wishes to disprove dualism but does not
necessarily object to a binitarian interpretation. When viewed together
with the christologicai conflicts outlined in the last chapter we see the
subtlety of the argument in a Christian context.
This is a special example of the inter-relationship between Christian
and Jewish communities because Dt. 32 is especially important to the
rabbinic polemic against "two powers/' It is evidenced often in tan-
naitic writings as proof against binitarianism entirely. It seems obvious
that the rabbis could not have brought up this passage originally to
defeat Marcion, because Marcion would have been able to agree to all
the rabbinic arguments against the doctrine of "two powers" within the
Old Testament. If the rabbinic use is in any way related to the Christian
and Marcionite use, it would have had to evolve earlier than Marcion.
Marcion himself need never have heard the rabbinic use of Dt. 32 at
all because he could have heard it from a source within the church.
It may even be that the church's usage contributed to the evolution of
standard terminology within Judaism. The exegetical issue dates from
the first century but the terminology was standardized in this context.
The most important point is to note that Marcion's statement of the
ignorance of the Old Testament god becomes a typical refutation of the
rabbinic understanding of Dt. 32, both for Marcion's followers and for
other groups of his day. The rabbis stress God's unity by means of
Dt. 32. Some gnostics will attribute these passages to the demiurge who
promulgated his uniqueness only because he is ignorant.
We are left with the conclusion that the rabbinic polemic against
"two powers" may oppose Tertuliian's theology but could not have
arisen to combat Marcion. In many respects Marcion's exegesis resembles
some of the critics of the Torah in Philo's time. No doubt philosophical
discussions about the nature of evil influenced him significantly. Many
rabbinic traditions about justice and mercy may have had Marcion in
:i2
See Harnack, p. 264* who relies on Origen for this conclusion.
MARCION 243
mind. But the debate over "two powers" must be earlier than Marcion
since Marcion's use of scripture, when relevant at all, presumes that
the debate has already reached a certain stage. Since Marcion himself
lived in the first half of the second century, we have more evidence
that the debate antedates the earliest references in rabbinic literature
and seems appropriate to the first century. Some of Marcion's followers,
like Apelles, certainly become relevant to the polemic when they give
up the radical dualism of Marcion and turn the inferior god into a
helping angel or deus secundus. In this respect they are no different
from a host of gnostic sects proliferating during this period. It is to
gnosticism that we must now turn our attention.
CHAPTER FIFTEEN
GNOSTICISM
Christians, gnostics and Marcion, then we are faced with the difficulty
of explaining how some "two powers in heaven" heretics changed the
early concept of co-operating deities into the two antagonistic deities
characteristic of later gnosticism.
Is there anything in the rabbinic evidence which helps us understand
the relationships between gnosticism and Christianity? The answer,
I feel, is "Yes." There are some clues about the relationship between
them in the scriptures they use. Gnosticism is an extremely widespread
phenomenon in the late Hellenism occurring in many different com-
munities—Jewish, Christian and pagan—so no history of traditions
in any one community can account for the whole development definiti-
vely. Nor can any single argument be viewed as absolute in such a
complex situation. Nevertheless, one significant aspect of the develop-
ment of gnosticism in the Jewish and Christian communities is high-
lighted by the scriptural traditions which we have been tracing, when
seen together with the gnostic texts found in the church fathers and
those from Nag Hammadi. The change from binitarian to dualistic
and gnostic systems seems more closely related to polemical exaggera-
tions between groups than to the earlier sectarian dualisms (like
Qumran, for example). Several intermediate systems will have to be
mentioned before the reason for the change from binitarianism to
dualism in sectarian literature will become clear.
The Poimandres is one of the earliest examples of these traditions.
C. H. Dodd dates it just prior to the time of Valentinus (130-140
CE.) but remarks that its exact date cannot yet be fixed. l As Dodd
shows, the work is an amalgam of the creation story based on the
Bible and various conceptions current in stoic and Platonic thought.
At the base of the cosmos there is only a primal God, Nous or Mind,
who is manifested to the seer as the figure Poimandres. Creation
is carried out by the primary manifestation of the highest being, the
logos or Word. This logos is personified as the Son of God in ways
similar to those we have seen in Philo and the Wisdom of Solomon
(18:15-16). 2 It is clear that, whatever else may be of interest in the
document, it would be considered "two powers in heaven" by the
rabbis. We can see that those powers are complementary.
Among the Greek philosophers, just as among the theosophists
who produced the hermetic literature, the concept of "second god"
3
For the history of scholarship on Numenius, see the new edition of the Fragments,
edited by Edouard des Places (Paris: 1973). The numbering of the fragments will be
according to des Places' system, not according to the numbering of Leemans.
4 Origen, Contra Celsum, IV, 52.
5 Fr. 16-17.
0
Fr. 15. Notice the affinities with Philo's discussion of God, based on the LXX
phrase, "place where God stands." In fact, since the study of K, S. Guthrie, Nume-
nius of Apamea: The Father of Neo-Platonism some relationship between Philo and
Numenius has been generally assumed.
7
See, for example, the study of Beutler in Pauly-Wissowa, Supplement 7 (1950).
8
Fr. 13. In this fragment Numenius uses the metaphor of a plantor of a vinyard
for God, as is common in Philo and Jewish tradition in general,
9
For a more detailed study of this question see Le R. P. Festugière, La révélation
d'Hermès Trismégiste, 4 Vols., (Paris: 1950-53), especially Vol. Ill and IV,
GNOSTICISM 247
steadfast in its authority and by its perfect power; for this Name does
not belong to the words (Lexeis) nor is it from the designations
(that) His Name (comes), for it is invisible. He has given a Name
to Him alone, while He it is who alone understands (lit. sees) it, while
he alone is he to whom it is possible to give a Name. In truth, He,
who is beyond being, has no Name. For what Name will one give
to Him who is not? On the other hand, he who has become in his
being, he is also with his Name and he alone knows it and to give
him a Name there was the Father alone. The Son is his Name; He
has therefore not concealed it by this action; but as soon as the Son
had come into being, He gave a Name to him alone. That is why
(lit. "therefore") the Name (of the Son) was that of the Father, in
the same way that the Name of the Father was (that of the) Son.
This mercy, where shall it find a Name, if it be not that of the
Father? But certainly someone will say to his neighbour: "Who is it
that will give a Name to Him before whom there was none, as m the
case of the name which children receive from those who give them
birth?' First of all, then, it is fitting for us to consider the mystery:
What is the Name? For this (i.e. this Name) is the Authentic Name.
This, then, has become the Name in the true sense of the word. So
he did not receive the Name as a loan, like the others, after the
manner of each, by which he returns (prob, trans, of onoma tes
dpokcUasiciseos). But this is the Real Name {kyrion onoma). There is
none other to whom He has given it; but He was Unnameable, He
was Ineffable until the moment when He, He alone who is perfect,
uttered it, and He it is who has the power to say his Name and to
understand (lit. "see") it. When He then (wished), still existing in
Himself, that His be!oved(?) Name should become His Son and
(when) He had given him the Name, (then) He who proceeded
from the Depth spoke of the hidden things of Him, knowing that
the Father is a Being without evil. Therefore He also sent this one
that he might speak about the Topos and His (place of) Rest, from
whence he proceeded, in order that he might glorify in the Pleroma
the Greatness of his Name and the Sweetness of the Father. 18
20
See H. Jonas, History of Religion, p. 267 who locates the following texts: # 2 7
(p. 149), # 3 9 (134:27-135:4; 143; 407), # 4 (UW: 148:27-33; 151- 3-28 155:
17-37), # 2 (Sacred book of the Invisible Great Spirit or Gospel of the Egyptians),
p. 178; # 4 (Sophia of Jesus, SJC in BG 125:10-126:5); # 1 , 6, 36 in Apoc. of John.
(BG 44:8-16 cf., 45:f If, 45:20-46:9). According to the more recent numbering of the
Nag Hammadi corpus the vain claim oH the demiurge can be found in clear form also
in "The Hypostasis of the Archons/' (II, 1) 86:28-87:3; 94:20-28; 94:34-95:7 in
"The Origin of the World" (II, 2) 103:6-20; "The Apocryphon of John" (II, 3)
11:18-21; 13:5-13 (with parallels to BG 44:9-17); "The Gospel of the Egyptians"
(II, 4) 58:23-59:4 and often elsewhere. My thanks to Anne Maguire and N. A. Dahl
for providing further references for the Nag Hammadi section oê the 1976 SBL
meeting. See also H. M. Schenke, Der Gott "Mensch" in der Gnosis, p. 87f.
Also see Gilles Quispel, "The Origins of the Gnostic Demiurge" Kyriakon: Fest-
schrift for Johannes Quasten, I (Leiden: 1970) 271-276, and H. A. Wolfson "The
Pre-existent Angel of the Magharians and Al-Nahawandi," fQR, XI (I960), for
exceedingly cogent discussions of gnostic roots in Jewish sectarianism.
GNOSTICISM 253
also play a role. All of these contain primary places where the doctrine
of "two powers" could be derived. In this case, the major character is
called Derdekeas and functions primarily as a redeemer. He is also
supposed to be the creator of heaven and earth, rather like Poimandres,
except that the atmosphere is now anti-Jewish. 24
Instead of evidence of de-Christianization, we have some evidence
that the tractate was Christianized. Hippolytus seems to use a form
of the Paraphrase of Shem as his main source for the doctrine of the
Serbians. -•> He calls it the Paraphrase of Seth, but the document is
essentially the same. In Hippolytus' version, however, several Christ-
ologicai interpretations have been added. 2(> Epiphanius knew of an
early gnostic sect, the Archontici (many powers?) who, like the be-
7
lievers of this document, considered water anathema in baptism. ~
A preliminary study seems to be showing that this document is an
example of non-Christian, Jewish sectarian gnostic work which was
later Christianized. Like the Poimandres it makes use of material from
the Hebrew Bible but in this case it is radically transformed into a
"negative value" Judaism for polemical purposes.
It is now possible to speak of the later history of the polemic. Just
as the rabbis were passionately trying to preserve their faith, so too
some "two powers" sectarians were passionately trying to preserve
theirs. They refuted the forceful rabbinic charge against dualism,
based on Dt. 32, by revaluing the biblical creation to make their god
or hero come out on top. We have already seen examples of this
creative exegesis. Cainite and Marcionite circles accepted the appro-
-* Fred Wisse seems to find that the notion of a pre-Christian savior myth is con-
firmed in this material, even though the document is not pre-Christian. It seems to
me more warranted to say that many of the aspects of what is called "the gnostic
salvation myth" are present, but the late date makes it impossible to decide when or
how ail the themes—helper in creation, Adam, angelic mediation and redemption—
came together.
25
Hippoi. Phihsophonmena, V, 19-22.
2(i
See V, 19, 20. Since Sethians identified Seth with Christ, this identification of
Shem with Christ indicates a peculiar relationship of Shem and Seth. We must also
remember that Shem and Melchizedek are ilxmly connected with Samaritanism by
Pseudo-Eupolemos. Shem and Melchizedek are also equated by the rabbis. In the
Sethian documents of the Nag Hammadi corpus, the vain claim of the demiurge
appears often. In The Second Logos of the Great Seth (VII, 2), for instance, the
Cosmocrator says to the angels "I am God" but was scorned. The savior in this case
has the Hebrew theophoric name "Adonaios" and gnostics ridicule orthodox christians
for believing in "two lords, even a multitude."
- 7 These Archontici lived in Palestine and were closely related to the Sethians.
For further reports about this sect in the church fathers, see Wisse, p. 139.
GNOSTICISM 255
bation "first born of Satan." In doing so, they revalued the dishonorable
epithet into a positive term. Similarly, gnostic distortion of the original
"two powers" tradition—the bifurcation of the second figure into a
gnostic savior and evil demiurge—can be seen as a response to the
aggravated atmosphere created by rabbinic polemic on the one side
and incipient orthodox Christian polemic on the other. 2 8 The heretics
must have reasoned that Israel's God and Christian orthodoxy's God
who claimed to be unique as recorded in monotheistic statements of
Exodus, Deuteronomy and Isaiah, was only an ignorant god. He did
not know about the gnostic god, who was going to save only those
who recognized him—that is, only the "two powers" heretics who were
"gnostics." The church offered a possible haven from the battle because
some varieties of Christianity maintained christologies which were very
close to the gnostic idea of the redeemer, and Christianity shared the
experience of expulsion from the synagogue for violating the doctrine
of monotheism. But both church and synagogue reacted antagonistically
to the gnostics. Thus we actually have a three-cornered battle. Extreme
anti-Jewish gnosticism can be seen to arise in circumstances where
groups holding "two powers" traditions run headlong into the polemics
against "two powers" and "many powers" which developed in the
rabbinic academies, but which were used by church fathers as well.
In a real sense then, both orthodoxy and heresy were trying to mani-
pulate scripture in order to demonstrate the veracity of their own
beliefs and the authority of their own clergy. The rabbis attempted
to use highly rationalized methods of exegesis to show that the stories
of the heretics were completely faulty. Their method, mid rash, was
derived from the discussions of the academies and the sermons of the
synagogues. The extreme gnostics countered by developing a massively
polemical mythology. 2i) The church fathers used both methods against
both sides.
28
This idea is an extension of the kind of development of traditions portrayed by
N . A. Dahl, Erstgeborene Satans, see p. 137 f. and p. 2 34 f. W e have jointly developed
these themes further, together with a response from Birger Pearson in a forthcoming
volume of proceedings from the SBL seminar on Nag Hammadi studies.
29
The whole issue of polemical mythology deserves more serious study, both
phenomenologically within history of religions circles and exegetically among scholars
of this particular period. In this case, for instance, Dt. 32:39 occurs as the boast.of
the demiurge in such a variety of gnostic systems that one cannot escape the conclusion
that the claim itself antedates any mythological setting. Probably many artificial myths
were created in order to explain how the claim of the demiurge (that he was the
only God) was to be treated. For an analogy see A. Kragerud, Die Hymnen der P/st/s
256 THK EXTRA-RABBINIC EVIDENCE AND CONCLUSIONS
Sophia (Oslo: 1967) especially 159-220. In that case, the myths about Sophia were
created to provide a setting for the Psalms and Odes of Solomon texts which the sect
wanted to clarify and interpret. Blaine Pagels reports in "The Demiurge and his
Archons—Gnostic Views on the Bishop and Presbyters?" HTR, (1976), p. 1, that
a similar battle can be seen between Christian and gnostic bishops. She suggests that
the real issue was over the authority and polity of the bishops, but was translated
into a mythological battle over whose god was higher! This is a very persuasive
argument about the social context of gnostic polemics. We should not assume that the
battles were merely exegetical. For instance, the social dimension of Johannine dualism
may be discoverable in the polemic against their Jewish neighbors, who oppose their
faith and have excluded them from the synagogue. See my article on the "Lord of the
World-Angel or Devil?: Towards a Sociology of Gnosticism," and also p. 189 n. 20.
-30 Iren. Adv. Haer, I, 5, 2-4 and I, 30, 1-6.
31 Hippol. Refut. vl, 33 and vii 25:3.
32 Epiphan. Pan. 26:2.
33 See p. 57 f.
31 Sec p. 225 f,
GNOSTICISM 257
42
H. 3 (59:2) Hennecke-Schneemelcher, p. 552.
GNOSTICISM 259
CONCLUSIONS
Having surveyed several varieties of extra-rabbinic literature in the
Hellenistic period to find texts relevant to the "two powers" contro-
versy, it is now time to return to the original questions of the inquiry:
Which extra-rabbinic groups are most likely to have been the targets
of the rabbinic polemic? How early is the "two powers" controversy?
The extra-rabbinic evidence has provided much information helpful
for answering both of these questions. Ail the data and many of the
conclusions have already been mentioned. But the various findings of
the study need to be summarized so that avenues for future research
can be defined.
In the rabbinic evidence, dating was an especially difficult problem,
because the traditions crystallized over a long period of time, forming
texts with complicated lattices and strata. Even when we could date a
document with relative certainty, we could not be sure that the earliest
form of that tradition was present in it. In such cases previous scholars
have felt relatively free to assume a long and sometimes fanciful
pre-history. With more careful attention to the text we were forced to
conclude that the rabbinic polemic against "two powers," like most
rabbinic traditions, can not be dated earlier than the time of Ishmael
and Akiba. While even such an early dating has problems in rabbinic
texts, there were many hints of greater antiquity.
In the rabbinic evidence, we discovered that the earliest issue con-
cerned the identity and status of a human figure in heaven. The issue
might have originally been the anthropomorphic language used of
God or the meaning of the two Hebrew words for deity, Y H W H and
Elohim. It was difficult to tell which problem was the most basic,
since both were based on the same exegetical context and were dis-
cussed together. In the late tannaitic period, but not before, we found
a certain amount of evidence for an opposing, configuration of deities
in the heretical theology. (R. Nathan).
Once the extra-rabbinic evidence was consulted it became obvious
that the rabbis' second century opponents had first century forebears.
In apocalyptic literature as well as in the Philonic corpus it was often
difficult to say whether the borderline between sectarian strife and
CONCLUSIONS 261
heresy was actually crossed. No doubt the line was drawn subjectively,
depending on the perspective of the observer.
It is now possible to construct a coherent, synchronized history of the
tradition. The early biblical theophanies which picture God as a man
or confuse YHWH with an angel are the basis of the tradition. The
book of Daniel, usually dated to Maccabean times, is the earliest
witness in the Bible to the existence of apocalyptic traditions of a
heavenly figure, though it is possible that some Enoch traditions are
older. Yet neither Daniel nor the early Enoch material give the figure
a title. Most attributes of the "son of man" or "manlike" figure are
undefined. Instead the tradition grew through differing exegeses of
a variety of theophany texts. The events narrated in Dan. 7:9 f. niay
be part of the Israelite Holy War and Divine Warrior traditions—
mythological motifs which Israel shared with its neighbors. If so,
Israelite culture, as is normal in cases of cultural contact, not only
shared the ideas, but transformed them to fit its own scheme of things.
The mythology recorded in early Daniel and Enoch traditions was
monotheistic and was fitted through exegesis to the events of Maccabean
times, stimulating the development of an eschatology suited to Macca-
bean partisans. The speculation continued among a number of groups
and was later canonized by the rabbinic community. In no way can
every occurrence be considered heretical.
Some traditions which became part of the "two powers" controversy
were known by Philo, who used the term "second god" (deuteros theos)
to describe the logos. The Hebrew equivalent "two gods" or "second
god" was used infrequently by the rabbis as a term of reproach. It did
not become the preferred title for heresy within the rabbinic movement,
possibly because of the risk of blasphemy merely in saying it. The
usual rabbinic terminology "two powers in heaven" was standardized
at the end of the tannaitic period, although alternatives continued to
enjoy a certain currency in the amoraic period, apparently in polemical
settings. "Two powers," on the other hand, was better suited for in-
forming the community of the dangers of heresy without revealing too
much of the content. It is impossible to speculate on how the Pharisees
would have reacted to Philo's system. •
Within the Palestinian community, with its many sects, polemics for
monotheism were used in a variety of ways. Paul seems to use anti-
"two powers" polemic against Jews whom he charged with venerating
angels while he himself could have been charged with the identical
crime by rabbinic Jews.
2Ö2 THE EXTRA-RABBINIC EVIDENCE AND CONCLUSIONS
the creation and at Sinai. Such arguments became even stronger during
the gnostic controversy. The received rabbinic identification of justice
and mercy with Elohim and Y H W H respectively is attested by the
second century. It was a convenient weapon against Christianity,
gnosticism and Marcionism because ït emphasÎ2ed that YHWH was a
merciful God, making mercy the aspect of God which was most often
manifested to Israel. While the argument made sense against Christ-
ianity, it was a very powerful argument against gnosticism, which
maintained that Israel's god was ignorant and arbitrary.
During the later stage of the heresy, which is better evidenced in
the rabbinic texts, almost any doctrine incompatible with monotheism
was understood by the rabbis as "two powers" speculation. Such may
already have been the case during the second century (Passage 1)
but it certainly is true in the Mishnah (Passage 7, Chapter 7). It also
seems clear that several church fathers evinced "two powers" heresy
in the second century. Justin especially, but also Theophilus, maintained
doctrines of the logos and Christ supported by scriptural traditions
which the rabbis opposed. The "two powers" polemic was related to
christological controversies between many of the early fathers as well.
By the end of the second century, arguments like R. Nathan's (Pas-
sage 2) were probably being used against dualists and gnostics, though
it is unclear whether R. Nathan himself had gnostics in mind. He may
have only been defending To rah against its critics. "Many powers in
heaven" was also singled out for censure. Groups espousing this belief
must have included any sectarians who provided an intricate mytho-
logical context for their angeiology by using the first chapters in
Genesis. Many second century gnostics and most third century gnostics
were prominent members of this heresy. By the end of the second
century complementary and antagonistic dualists were both evidencing
"two powers" traditions, but before that time there was no evidence for
any opposing configuration of deities either among the heretics or
among the rabbinic traditions.
The rabbinic texts, which recorded only the rabbinic side of the
argument, ordered and related the traditions thematicaily or by scriptural
reference. This unintentionally obfuscated the historical progression
of the debate. When both sides of the tradition have been presented
and compared according to their use of scripture, the original order of
the debate can be reconstructed.
Once the debate is reconstructed, we are able to understand some
of the historical issues affecting the exegesis. By the time of the con-
264 THE EXTRA-RABBINIC EVIDENCE AND CONCLUSIONS
Throughout this work, the central thread uniting all the early tradi-
tions has been God's theophany at the Sea, Sinai, in the Temple, in
the Song of Songs, Daniel, Psalms and the prophets. It is quite evident
that these traditions, contributing to what will be known as Merkabah
mysticism in Judaism, have been a major factor m the development
of the Jewish-Christian-gnostic polemic. Much more work is needed
to uncover the fascinating subject of early Jewish mystical traditions.
The use of the term "second god" in Christian and pagan Platonism
should also be investigated further. Perhaps philosophers like Nu-
menius, who had some contact with Hebrew thought, will become an
important link in understanding the relationship between the church
fathers and the rabbis. It may turn out that the issues with which the
rabbis were concerned were of general interest to all educated men
at that time, while the exegetical issues were formulated by those
intellectuals interested in combining Greek and Hebrew thought.
Further research is certainly necessary to uncover the social dynamics
of this hostility. The exegetical nature of our texts should not preclude
such inquiry. In the early post-war confusion, many groups were doubt-
lessly making claims for the authority to speak for the entire Jewish
community. The conflict, as we have it recorded in "religious texts,"
was expressed in theological rather than political or social terms. No
doubt, some social and political forces were being expressed in the
religious controversies. For instance, strict dualism seems to appear
where the most ferocious social antagonisms are expressed and seems
to function as an explanation of opposition
This study began by admitting that the reports about "two powers
In heaven" were obscure. It is not likely that the preceding description
and analysis has altered anyone's opinion about their obscurity. How-
ever, it does not necessarily follow that the reports are unimportant.
Not until the reports were collected, collated, arranged and dated could
the full significance of the "two powers" controversy become evident.
It seems to have been one of the primary rabbinic categories for
describing heresy. Furthermore, hidden within the reports is the Jewish
witness to the rise of Christianity, even though the texts date from
centuries later. They certainly give us a good idea of the issues over which
Christianity and Judaism separated. Continued close study of rabbinic
evidence may reveal more of this epoch-making period of history for
all the religious traditions of the West.
BIBLIOGRAPHY
PRIMARY SOURCES
Altjüdisches Schrifttum ausserhalb der Bibel, Ed. and Tr. Paul Riessler, Heidelberg:
F. H. Kerie Verlag, 1966.
Die Apokalypse Abrahams und das Testament der vierzig Maertyrer. Ed, and Tr.
Gottlieb Nathanael Bonwetsch. Aalen: 1972, Neudruck der Ausgabe Leipzig:
1897.
Aboth de R. Nathan. Ed, S. Schechter. New York: Eeldheim, 1945,
The Apocalypse of Abraham: from the Roumanian text. Ed. M. Gaster. Transactions
of the Society of Biblical Archaeology, IX: 1887.
Apocalypse of Adam. Ed. George MacRae. SBL: 1972.
The Apocrypha and Pseudepigrapha of the Old Testament in English with intro-
ductions and Critical and Explanatory Notes to the Several Books. Ed. R. H.
Charles, et al. Two Volumes. Oxford: Oxford University Press, 1968.
Apostolic Fathers. Ed. and Tr. Lightfoot. (Completed by J. R. Haimer.) Grand Rapids:
1956.
The Babylonian Talmud. Ed. Rabbi Dr. I. Epstein. London: Soncino Press, 1961.
Biblia Hebraica. Ed. Rud, Kittel, et aL Stuttgart: Württemberg is che Bibelanstalt, 1962.
The Bible in Aramaic. Ed. A, Sperber. Volume I: The Pentateuch according to Targum
Onkelos. Leiden. Brill, 1959.
The Bible in Aramaic. Ed. A. Sperber. Volume III: The Latter Prophets according to
Targum Jonathan. Leiden: Brill, 1962.
The Book of Tobit: An English Translation with Introduction and Commentary. Ed.
Frank Zimmerman. New York: Harper Sc Row, 1958.
Clemens Romanus. First and Second Clement. Ed. R. M. Grant and H. H. Graham.
New York: 1965.
Clemens Romanus. [Spurious and Doubtful Works] Die syrischen Clementine mit
griechischem parallel Text; eine Vorarbeit zu dem literargeschichtlichen Problem
der Sammlung von Wilhelm Frankenburg. 1937.
Clemens Romanus. [Spurious and Doubtful Works],. Clementina. Ed. Paul de Lagarde.
Osnabrück: 1966.
Clemens Romanus. [Spurious and Doubtful Works], Die Pseudoklementinen. Ed.
Bernhard Rchm. Berlin: 1953-65.
Clemens, Romanus. [Spurious and Doubtful Works], Les Homélies Clementines:
Première traduction française avec une introduction et des notes par A. Siouville.
Paris: 1933.
Daily Prayer Book {Ha-Siddur Ha-Shalem). Ed. Philip Birnbaum. New York: 19/l9.
The Dead Sea Scrolls in English. Ed. Ge2a Vermes, Harmondsworth: Penguin Books,
1968.
The Dead Sea Scriptures in English Translation. Ed. and Tr. T. H. Gaster. Anchor
Doubleday: 1964.
The Dead Sea Scrolls College Text and Study Guide. Ed. M. Mansoor. Leiden: Brill,
1966.
Eusebii Pamphili. Evangelicae Praeparaiionis. Ed. Gifford. Oxford: 1903.
L'Évangile de Vérité. Ed. J. Ménard. Leiden: Brill, 1972.
Evangelien aus dem Nilssand. Ed. W. C, van Unnik. Frankfurt-am-Main: I960.
The Fathers According to Rabbi Nathan. Tr. Judah Goldin. New Haven: Yale Uni-
versity Press, 1955.
BIBLIOGRAPHY 269
Mechilta d' Rabbi Ismael. Ed, H. S. Horowitz and A. Rabin. Jerusalem: Bamberger &
Wahrmann, I960.
Midrash Bereshit Rabba, Critical edition with notes and commentary (in Hebrew).
Ed. J. Theodor and C. Albeck. 2nd printing, corrected. Jerusalem: Wahrmann,
1965.
Midrash Debar im Rabba, Edited for the first time from the Oxford Ms. No. 147
with an introduction and notes. 2nd edition with additions and corrections. Ed.
S, Lieberrnan. Jerusalem: Wahrmann, 1964/65.
The Midrash on Psalms, Tr. William G. Braude. Two volumes. New Haven; Yale
University Press, I960.
Midrash Rabbah, Ed. and Tr. under the direction of H. Freedman and M. Simon. Ten
volumes. London: Soncino Press, 1961.
Midrasch Tanchuma; Ein agadischer Commentar zum Pentateuch von Rabbi Tanchuma
ben Rabbi Abba, Zum ersten male nach Handschriften aus den Bibliotheken zu
Oxford, Rom, Parma und München herausgegeben. Kritisch bearbeitet, commentirt
und mit einer ausführlichen Einleitung (auf Hebräische) versehen. Ed. S. Buber.
Wilna: Romm, 1885- Reprinted in Wilna, 1913, and in Jerusalem, 1963/64. The
edition is based on Oxford Opp. 20 ( = Neubauer Cat. 154).
Midrash Tanchuma: Ein Agadischer Commentar zum Pentateuch von Rabbi Tanchuma
ben Rabbi Abba. Hd. S. Buber. Vilna, Jerusalem, 1963/64. From Vilna: Romm,
1885.
Midrasch Tannai m zum Deuteronomium. Ed. D. Hoffmann. Berlin: M. Poppclaver,
1908-09.
Midrash Tehillim (called Sohar Tob). Ed. Solomon Buber. Vilna: 5651.
Midrash Tehillim, Ed. Mahari Cohen. Jerusalem: 5728.
Midrash Wayyik.ra Rabba, A Critical Edition Based on Mss. and Genua Fragments with
Variants and Notes. lid. M. Margulies. Jerusalem: Ministry of Education and Cul-
ture, 1953-60,
Miqraot Gedolot [Rabbinic Bible], Jerusalem: Schocken, 1958-59.
The Six orders of the Mishnah [in Hebr.] Ed. E. Albeck and H. Yalon. 6 volumes.
Jerusalem: Biahk Institute and Tel Aviv: Dvir, 1952-56.
The Mishnah, Tr. Herbert Danby, London; Oxford University Press, 1964.
New Testament Apocrypha. Ed. E. Hennecke and W. Schneemelcher. Tr, R. McL.
Wilson. Philadelphia; Westminster Press, 1963-64.
Oracles Chaldaiques avec un choix de commentaires anciens. Ed. and Tr. E. des Places.
Paris; Société d'Édition "tes Belles-Lettres," 1971.
Origenes. Contra Celsum. Tr. Henry Chadwick. Cambridge: 1965.
On'genes. Dialogue of Ortgen with Heracleides in Alexandrian Christianity, Ed. H.
Chadwick and J. L. Oui ton, Philadelphia: The Westminster Press, Ï954.
Papyri Graecae Magicae, Ed, K. Preisendanz et al. 1928-31.
Palrologiae Cursus Complétas Series Graeca, Hd. Jacques Paul Migne. Paris: 1928-36.
The Writings of St. Paul. Ed. W. A. Meeks. New York: 1972.
Pesikta Rabbati; Midrash für den Fest-Cyclus und die ausgezeichneten Sabbathe.
Ed. M. Friedmann. Tel Aviv: 1962/63. Reprint of Vienna, 1880 edition.
Pesikta Rabbati: Discourses for Feasts, Pasts, and Special Sabbaths. Tr. William G.
Braude. Two volumes. New Haven: Yale University Press, 1968.
Philo in Ten Volumes and Two Supplementary Volumes. Tr. F. H. Colson and G. H.
Whitaker and R. Marcus. Cambridge: Harvard University Press, 1971.
Philom's Alexandrini. Opera Quae Supersunt. Ed. Leopoldus Cohn. Berolini: 1896.
Pirke de Rabbi Eliezer. [The Chapters oî Rabbi Eliezer the Great] According to the
text of the manuscript belonging to Abraham Epstein of Vienna. Tr. Gerald
Friedender. New York: Hermon Press, 1970.
Siphre d'Be Rab. Fasciculus primus: Siphre ad Numeros adjecto Siphre zutta. Ed. H. S.
Horovitz. Schriften herausgegeben von der Gesellschaft zur Forderung der Wissen-
BIBLIOGRAPHY 271
SECONDARY SOURCES
Aalen, S,, Die Begriffe 'Licht' und 'Finsternis' im AT, im Spätjudentum und im
Rabbanismus. Oslo: 1951.
Abrahams, Israel, Studies in Pharisaism and the Gospels. New York: Ktav, 1967.
Alon, Gedaliah, Studies in Jewish History in the time of the 2nd Temple, the Mishnah
and the Talmud, [in Hebr.] Jerusalem: 1967.
272 BIBLIOGRAPHY
Altmann, A., "The Gnostic Background of the Rabbinic Adam Legends." JQR, NS 35
(1944-45), 371-391.
Altmann, A., "Gnostic Themes in Rabbinic Cosmology." Essays Presented to J. H.
Hertz. lîd. J. Epstein, E, Levine, and C. Roth, London: 1942, 19-32.
Angus, B., The Mystic Religions and Christianity: A Study in the Religious Background
of Early Christianity, New York: Charles Scribner's Sons, 1925.
Anz, Wilhelm, Zur Frage nach dem Ursprung des Gnosticismus. Ein religionsgeschicht-
licher Versuch. Leipzig: 1897.
Apocalypticism. Ed., R, Frank. Journal for Theology and the Church. Number 6, New
York: Herder and Herder, 1969.
Aptowitzer, V-, "Christliche TalmudfoKchuiig." MGWJ, 57 (1913), 10-23.
Aptowitzer, V., "Geschichte einer liturgischen Formel." MGWJ, 73 (1929), 95-118.
Aptowitzer, V., "The Heavenly Temple according to the Aggadah." fin Hebr.]. Tarbiz,
2 (1930-31), 137-276.
Aptowitzer, V., Kam und Abel in der Agada: den Apocryphes, der hellenistischen,
christlichen und muhammedanischen Literatur. Vienna and Leipzig: R. Lowit,
Z922,
Aptowitzer, V., "Die rabbinischen Berichte über die Entstehung der Septuaginta."
Ua-Kedem, 2 (St. Petersburg: 1908), 11-27, 102-122.
Aptowitzer, V., "Die rabbinischen Berichte über die Entstehung der Septuaginta."
Ua-Kedem, 3 (St. Petersburg: 1909), 4-17.
The Cambridge History of Later Greek and Early Medieval Philosophy. Ed. A. H.
Armstrong. Cambridge: 1967.
Bacher, W., Die Agada der Palästinischen Amoraer. Strassburg: 1892.
Bacher, W., The Legends of the Tannaim. [Hebr. tr. of die Agada der Tanniiiten] Tel
Aviv: 5682.
Bacher, W., Die exegetische Terminologie der judischen Traditionsliteratur. Zwei
Teile. Darmstadt: Wissenschaftliche Buchgesellschaft, 1965. [Reprint of Leipzig
; 1899 & 1905].
Bacher, W., "Die Gelehrten von Caesarea." MGWJ, 45 (1901), 298-311.
Bamberger, Bernard J., Valien Angels. Philadelphia: Jewish Publication Society of
America, 1952.
Bandstra, A. J., The Law and the Elements of the World, n.p.: 1964.
Baneth, Eduard, Ursprung der Sadok'âer und Boethosäer. Frankfort: Kauffman, 1882.
Barbel, J., Christos Angelos: Die Anschauung von Christus als Bote und Engel in der
gelehrten und volkstümlichen Literatur der christlichen Altertums. Bonn: Han-
stein, 1941. [Reprint, 1964].
Baron, S. W., A Social and Religious History of the Jews. New York: 1958.
Barrett, C. Kingsley, "Stephen and the Son of Man," Apophoreta: Festschrift—Ernst
Haenchen. Berlin: 1964, 32-38.
Baumgarten, J. M., "Form Criticism and the Oral Law." JSJ, v (1974), 34-41.
Bauer, Walter, Orthodoxy and Heresy in Earliest Christianity, appendices by Georg
Strecker, ed., Robert Kraft and Gerhard Krodel [Trans, by a team from the
Philadelphia Seminar on Christian Origins]. Philadelphia: Fortress Press, 1971.
Bergmeier, R., "Zur Frühdatierung samaritanischer Theologoumena." JSJ, v (1974),
121-153.
Bergmann, J., Jüdische Apologetik im neutestarnentlichen Zeitalter. Berlin: Georg
Reimer, 1908.
Berkhof, H-, Christ and the Powers. Tr. John Howard Yoder. Scottsdale, Pa.: 1962.
Betz, Otto, Der Paraklet: Fürsprecher im häretischen Spätjudentum, im Johannes-
evangelium und neu gefundenen gnostischen Schriften. Leiden: Brill, 1963.
Beutler, Rudolf, "Numemos" in Supplements to Pauly-Wissowa Realencyclopedie der
das sischerz Wissenschaft. Stuttgart: 1894.
BIBLIOGRAPHY 273
Buchanan, George W., "The Samaritan Origin of the Gospel of John." Religions in
Antiquity (Festschrift for E. R. Goodenough), 149-175.
Büchler, A., "La Kedouscha du Yoçer chez les Geonim." REJ, 53 (1907), 220-230.
Büchler, A., "The Minim of Sepphoris and Tiberias in the Second and Third Centu-
ries." From the Adolf Büchler memorial volume, Studies in Jewish History,
Oxford: Oxford University Press, 195Ö, 245-274.
Büchler, A., Studies in Sin and Atonement in the Rabbinic Literature of the First
Century. New York: Ktav, 1967.
Büchler, A., Types of Jewish-Palestinian Piety: from 70 B.C.E. to 70 CE. The Ancient
Pious Men. Oxford: Jews College Publication # 8 , n.d.
Bultmann, R., Primitive Christianity in its Contemporary Settings. Tr. R. H. Fuller.
Cleveland: World, 1969.
Catchpole, D., The Trial of Jesus: A Study in the Gospels and Jewish Historiography
from 1770 to the Present Day, Leiden: Brill, 1971.
Charles, R. H., Eschatology: The Doctrine of a Future Life in Israel, Judaism, and
Christianity. New York: Schocken Books, 1963.
Clemen, C , Die griechischen und lateinischen Nachrichten über die persische Religion.
Giessen: 1920.
Collins, J. J., "Apocalyptic lischatology as the Transcendence of Death." CBQ, 36
(1974), 21-43.
Collins, J. J., "The Son of Man and the Saints of the Most high in the Book of
Daniel." JBL, 93 (1974), 50-66.
Colpe, Carsten, Die Religionsgeschichtliche Schule. Göttingen: Vandenhoeck & Rup-
recht, 1961,
Colpe, Carsten, "New Testament and Gnostic Christology." Religions in Antiquity,
227-243,
Cooke, G., "The Sons of the God(s)." ZAW, 76 (1964), 22-47.
Cross, F. M., The Ancient Library of Qumran and Modern Biblical Studies. Garden
City: Anchor Books, 196 i.
Cross, F. M„ "Yahweh and the God of the Patriarchs." HTR, 55 (1962), 225-259.
Cullman, O., Le problème littéraire et historique du roman Pseudo-Clémentin: Étude
sur le rapport entre le gnosticisme et la Judéo-Chrétiennisme, Paris: Felix Alcan,
1930.
Cumont, F., After Life in Roman Paganism, New York: Dover, 1959-
Cumont, F., Astrology and Religion Among the Greeks and Romans, New York:
Dover, I960.
Cumont, F., "Le mysticisme astrale dans l'antiquité." Bulletins de la classe des lettres
et des sciences morales et politiques et de la classe des beaux arts de Académie
Royale de Belgique, 58 (1909), 256-286.
Cumont, F., "La Théologie solaire du paganisme romaine". Mémoires présentés par
divers savants à l'Académie Des Inscriptions et Belles-Lettres de l'Institut de
France. Tome XIT, Deuxième partie: Paris, 1913, 448-481.
Dahl, N . A., The Crucified Messiah and other essays. Minneapolis: Augsburg Pub-
lishing House, 1974.
Dahl, N . A., "Der Erstgeborene Satans und der Vater des'Teufels (Polyk. 7:1 und
Joh. 8:44), Apophoreta: Pestschrift—Ernst Haenchen. Berlin: 1964.
Dahl, N . A., "Eschatology and History in the Light of the Dead Sea Scrolls," The
Future of our Religious Past, Festschrift for Bultmann, ed. J. M. Robinson, 3-18.
Dahî, N . A., "Form-Critical Observations on the Early Preaching to the Church."
unpublished paper,
Dahl, N . A., "The Fragment 2 Corinthians 6:14-7:1 and its Context." unpublished
paper.
BIBLIOGRAPHY 275
Dahl, N. A., "The Johannine Church and History." Ed. Klassen & Snyder. Current
Issues in New Testament Interpretation. New York: 1962.
Dahl, N . A., Das Volk Gottes: Eine Untersuchung zum Kirchenhewusstsein des Ur-
christentums. Darmstadt: Wissenschaftliche Buchgesellschaft, 1963.
Dahl, N . A., "Widersprüche in der Bibel, ein altes hermeneutisches Problem." Studio.
Theologica, 25 (1971), 1-19.
Dahl, M A. and A. Segal, "Philo and the Rabbis and the Names of God," seminar
paper SBL convention, Washington, October, 197-1
Danielou, ]., The Theology of Jewish Christianity, (vol. I of the Development of
Christian Doctrine before the Council of Nicaea) Tr. and Ed, by J, A. Baker.
London: Darton, Longman and Todd, 1964. Chicago: Henry Regnery, 1964.
Danielou, ]., "Les traditions secrètes des apôtres." Eranos Jahtbuch, 31 (1962), 199-
215.
Davies, J. G., He Ascended into Heaven: A Study in The History of Doctrine. New
York: Association Press, 1958.
Davies, W. D., "A Note on Josephus' Antiquities 15:136." HTR, 47 (1954), 135.
Davies, W. D., Torah in the Messianic Age and/or the Age to Come. Philadelphia:
Society of Biblical Literature, 1952.
Dejonge, M., "The Use of the Word 'Anointed 1 in the Time of Jesus," NT, 8 (i960),
132-1.48.
Dejonge, M. et A. S. van der Woucle, "11 Q Melch. and the New Testament."
NTS, 12 (1956), 301-326.
Delcor, M., "Melchisedek from Genesis to the Qumran texts and the Epistle to the
Hebrews." JSJ, 2 (1971), 115-135.
Dey, Lala K. K., The Intermediary World and Patterns of Perfection in Philo and
the Hebrews. Missoula: SBL dissertation series, 1975.
Dieterich, A., Abraxas: Studien zur Religions geschieht e des spateren Altertums.
Leipzig: Teubner, 1891.
Dieterich, A., Eine Mithrasliturgie. Leipzig: Teubner, 1923.
Dix, Gregory, "The Seven Archangels and the Seven Spirits." JTS, 28 (1926), 233-
285.
Dodds, C H., The Bible and the Greeks, London: Hodder & Stoughton, 1935 (3rd
printing, 1964).
Dodds, E. R., Theurgy, JRSt 37 (1948).
Dodds, E. R., The Greeks and the Irrational. Berkeley. University of California Press,
1968.
Dodds, li. R„ "New Light on the Chaidaean Oracles." HTR, 54 (1961), 272 f.
Dodds, E. R., Pagan and Christian in an Age of Anxiety: Some Aspects of Religious
Experience from Marcus Aurelius to Constantine. New York: W . W . Norton,
1965.
Doresse, J., The Secret Book of the Egyptian Gnostics. New York: I960.
Drijvers, H. J. W., "The Origins of Gnosticism." Nederlands Theologisch Tijdschrift,
22 (1967/68), 321-51.
Duchesne-Guillernin, J., Symbols and Values in Zoroastrianism: Their Survival and
Renewal. New York: Harper & Row, 1970.
Duncan, G., The Epistle of Raul to the Galatians, New York: 1934.
Dupont-Sommer, A., "The Essenes in Ancient Literature." The Ess en e Writings from
Qumran. Tr. G. Vermes. Oxford: Blackwell, 1961.
Edsrnan, Carl-Martin, Le baptême de feu. Leipzig: Lorentz, Uppsala: Lundequistska,
1940.
Eissfeldt, O., The Old Testament: An Introduction. Tr. Peter R. Ackroyd. New York:
Harper and Row, 1965.
Elbogen, L, Der jüdische Gottesdienst in seiner geschichtlichen Entwicklung. Hildes-
heim: Georg Olms, 1962.
276 BIBLIOGRAPHY
Friedländer, M., "Der Minaismus," Die religiösen Bewegungen innerhalb des Juden-
tums im Zeitalter Jesu. Berlin: 1905.
Friedländer, M., Vorchristliche jüdische Gnosticismus. Göttingen: Vandenhoeck &
Ruprecht, 1898.
Frye, R., "Reitzenstein and Qumran Revisited by an Iranian." HTR, 55 (1962), 266.
Gager, J., "The Dialogue of Paganism with Judaism: Bar Cochba to Julian." HUCA,
44 (1973), 89-118.
Gager, J., "The Gospels and Jesus: Some Doubts about Method." JR, 54 (1974),
244-272.
Gager, J., "Marcion and Philosophy." Vigilae Christianae, 26 (1972), 53-59.
Gager, ]., Moses in Graeco-Roman Paganism. Nashville: Abingdon Press, 1972.
Galavaris, G., Bread and the Liturgy: The Symbolism of Early Christian and Byzantine
Bread Stamps. Madison: University of Wisconsin Press, 1970.
Gammie, ]., "Spatial and Ethical Dualism in Jewish Wisdom and Apocalyptic Litera-
ture." JBL, 93 (1974), 356-385.
Geiger, A., Nachgelassene Schriften: Herausgegeben von Ludwig Geiger. IV Band.
Berlin: 1876.
Gerhardsson, B., Memory and Manuscript: Oral Tradition and Written Transmission
in Rabbinic Judaism and Early Christianity, Lund: 1961.
Gershevitch, I., "Zoroaster's Own Contribution to Zoroastrianism." JNES, 23 (1964),
12-31.
Ginzburg, "Merkabah" JE, 5 (138-139).
Ginzburg, L., The Legends of the Jews. Tr. Henrietta Szold. Philadelphia: The Jewish
Publication Society of America, 1968.
Ginzberg, L., Die Haggada bei den Kirchenvätern. Erster Theil. Die Haggada in den
pseudohieronymianischen "Quaestiones". Amsterdam: 1899-
Gnilka, J., "2 Cor 6:14-7:1 in the Light of the Qumran Texts and the Testaments of
the Twelve Patriarchs." N eut es tarn entliche Aufsatze (Festschrift J. Schmid) H. j .
Blinzer et al., Regensburg: 1963, 86-99.
Goldberg, A. M., Untersuchungen über die Vorstellung von der Schekhinah in der
frühen rabbinischen Literatur: Talmud und Midrash. Berlin: Walter De Gruyter,
1969.
Goldfahn, A. H., Jnstinus Martyr und die Agada. Breslau: Glutsch, n.d.
Goldin, J., "Not By Means of an Angel and Not By Means of a Messenger". Religions
in Antiquity. Ed. J. Neusner. Leiden: Brill, 1968.
Goldin, J., The Song at the Sea: Being a Commentary on a Commentary in Two Parts,
New Haven: Yale University Press, 1971.
Goodenough, E. R., By Light, Light: The Mystic Gospel of Hellenistic Judaism. New
Haven: Yale University Press, 1935.
Goodenough, E. R., An Introduction to Philo Judaeus. Oxford: Basil Blackwell, 1962.
Goodenough, K, R., "Literal Mystery in Hellenistic Judaism," Quantalacumque: Studies
Presented to Kirsopp Lake. London: 1937, 227-241.
Goodenough, E. R., "The Pseudo-Justinian 'Oratio Ad Graecos.' " Harvard Theological
Review, 18 (1925), 187-200.
Goodenough, E. R., "Psychopomps" Ch. 11 of Jewish Symbols in the Greco-Roman
Period. Princeton: 1958.
Goodenough, E. R., The Theology of Justin Martyr. Jena: 1922.
Goodspeed, E. J., Index Apologeticus to Justin. Chicago: 1912.
Graetz, H., Gnosticisinus und Judenthum. Krotoschin: Monasd und Gohn, 1846.
Graetz, H. ; History of the Jews. Philadelphia: 1893.
Grant, F. C., Ancient Judaism and the New Testament. New York: Macmiilan, 1959.
Grant, R. M., Gnosticism and Early Christianity, Revised edition. New York:
Harper & Row, 1966.
278 BIBLIOGRAPHY
Green, A., "The Children in Egypt and the Theophany at the Sea: Interpretation
of an Aggadic Motif." unpublished paper,
Gruenwald, I., Apocalyptic and Merkabah Mysticism: A Study of the Jewish Esoteric
Literature in the Time of the Mishnah and Talmud. Jerusalem: Unpublished
dissertation of the Hebrew University, 1968-69.
Günther, J. J., St. Paul's Opponents and Their Background: A Study of Apocalyptic
and Jewish Sectarian Teachings. Leiden: Brill, 1973.
Guthrie, W . K. JL, A History of Greek Philosophy. Cambridge: Cambridge Uni-
versity Press, 1962,
Haardt, R., I'd. Gnosis: Characters and Testimony. Tr, J. F. Hendry. Leiden: Brill, 197!.
Hadas, Moses & M. Smith, Heroes and Gods: Spiritual Biographies in Antiquity.
New York: Harper & Row, 1965.
von Harnack, Adolf, Die Altercatio Simonis Judaei et TheophiU Irani, nebst Unter-
suchungen über die anti-jüdische Polemik, in der alten Kirche. Berlin: 1883.
von Harnack, Adolf, Marcion: Das Evangelium vom fremden Gott, Eine Monographie
zur Geschichte der Grundlegung der katholischen Kirche. Neue Studien zu
Marcion. Darmstadt: Wissenschaftliche Buchgesellschaft, I960.
von Harnack, Adolf, und Schmidt, Carl, Texte und Untersuchungen zur Geschichte der
altchristlichen Literatur. Leipzig: Hinrich'ssche Buchhandlung, 1913.
Hartman, Lars, Prophecy Interpreted: The Formation of Some Jewish Apocalyptic Texts
and the Eschatological Discourse, Mark 13. Lund: Gleerup, 1966.
Hay, David M., Glory at the Right Hand: Psalm 110 in Early Christianity. Nashville:
Abingdon Press, 1973.
Hegerman, Harald, Die Vorstellung vom Schöpfungsmittler im hellenistischen Juden-
tum und Urchristentum. Berlin: Akademie, 1961.
Heinemann, ]., Prayer in the Period of the Tannaim and Amoraim (in Hebr.) Jeru-
salem: 1966.
Heintzel, E., Hermogenes: Der Hauptvertreter des philosophischen Dualismus in der
alten Kirche: Ein Beitrag zur Geschichte der patristischen Philosophie. Berlin:
1902.
Hengel, Martin, Judentum und Hellenismus: Studien zu ihrer Begegnung unter be-
sonderer Berüchsichtigung Palastinas bis zur Mitte des 2 Jh. s. v. Chr. Tübingen:
Mohr (Siebeck), 1973.
Hengel, Martin, Der Sohn Gottes: Die Entstehung der Christologie und die jüdisch-
helleniitische Religiousgeschichte. Tübingen; Mohr, !925—1 tr. by John Bowden
Philadelphia; Fortress, 1976].
Hcngci, Martin, Victory over Violence: Jesus and the Revolutionists. Tr. David V..
Green. Introduction by Robin Scroggs. Philadelphia: Fortress, 1973.
Herford, R. Travers, Christianity in Talmud and Midrash. London: Williams and
Norgate, 1903.
Hilgenfeld, A,, Judentum und Juden-Christentum: Eine Nachlese zur der Ketzer-
geschickte des Urchristentum. Hildesheim 1966. (Reprint of 1S86 edition.)
Hilgenfeld, A., Die Ketzengeschickte des Urchristenthums. Leipzig: 1884.
Hindley, J. C , "Towards a Date for the Similitudes of Enoch: An Historical Ap-
proach." NTS, 14 (1967-68).
Herschberg, Harris, "Allusions to the Apostle Paul in the Talmud," JBL, 62 (1943),
73-87.
Herschberg, Harris, "Once Again The Minim." JBL, 67 (1948), 305-318.
Holscher, Uvo, Anfängliches Fragen: Studien zur frühen griechischen Philosophie.
Göttingen: 1968.
Hulen, Amos, B., "The 'Dialogues with the Jews' as Sources for the Early Jewish
Argument Against Christianity." JBL, 51 (1932), 58-71.
Inge, W . R., The Philosophy of Plotinus. London: 1923.
BIBLIOGRAPHY 279
Kraeling, C. H., Anthropos and Son of Man. New York: Columbia University Press,
1927.
Kragerud, A., Die Hymnen der Pistis Sophia, Oslo: 1967.
Krause, M. (Ed.), Essays on the Nag Hammadi Texts in Honor of Alexander Böhlig.
Leiden: Brill, 1972.
Krauss, S., Un fragment polémique de la geniza." REJy LXIII, 63-74.
Krauss, S., Griechische und lateinische Lehnwörter in Talmud, Midrash und Targum.
Berlin: Calvary, 1898-99.
Kretschmar, Georg, Studien zur frühchristlichen Trinitätstheologie. Tübingen: Mohr,
1956.
Kretschmar, G., "Zur religionsgeschichtlichen Einordnung der Gnosis." Evangelische
Theologie, 13 (1953), 354-61.
Krochmal, N., More Nevukhe ha-Zeman. Lemberg: 1851.
Kuhn, K. G-, Konkordanz zu den Qumraniexten. Göttingen: Vandenhoeck & Ruprecht,
I960.
Kümmel, W. G. (Ed.), Introduction to the New Testament. Tr. A. J. Mattill, Jr.
Nashville: Abingdon Press, 1965.
Kropp, A. M., Der Lobpreis des Erzengels Michael. Bruxelles: 1966.
Kuntz, J. K., The S elf-Revelation of God. Philadelphia: Westminster Press, 1967. '
Laubscher, F. du T., "God's Angel of Truth and Mekhizedek, A Note on 11Q
Melch 13b." JSJ, 3 (1972), 46-51.
Langdon, E., The Angel Teaching of the New Testament. London: n.d.
Lauterbach, J., Rabbinical Essays. New York: Ktav, 1973, c 1951.
Lauterbach, J., "Some Clarifications on the Mekhilta." (Heb.) Sefer Klausner: A Col-
lection of Science and Belles-Lettres gathered for Professor Yoseph Klausner on his
Sixtieth Jubilee, lid. N. H. Torchyner, A. Tcherikover, A. A. Kubed, B. Shortman.
Tel Aviv: 1940.
Lautcrbach, J., "Zur Erforschung des Jelamdenu-Problems." MGWJ, 74 (1930), 266-
284.
Leany, A. R. C, The Rule of Qumran and its Meaning. London: 1966.
Le Déaut, R., "Aspects de l'intercession dans le Judaisme ancien." JSJ, 1 (1970),
35-57.
Lehmann, J., "Les sectes Juives mentionnées dans la Mischna de Berakhot et de
Meguilla." RE}, 30 (1895), 182-203.
Leivcstad, R., "Exit the Apocalyptic Son of Man." NTS, 18 (1972), 243-267.
Levine, L., A History of Caesarea under Roman Rule. New York: Unpublished dis-
sertation, Columbia University, 1970.
Levey, S., "The Best Kept Secret of the Rabbinic Tradition." Judaism, 21 (1972),
454-69-
Levy, J., Chaldäisches Wörterbuch über die Targumim und einen grossen Theil des
rabbinischen Schriftthums. Cologne: J. Melzer, 1859.
Levy, J. (Ed.), Neuhebräisches und chaldäisches Wörterbuch über die Talmudim
und Midrashim. Leipzig: 1876-9.
Lewy, H., Chaldean Oracles and Theurgy: Mysticism, Magic and Platonism in the
Later Roman Empire. Cairo: Imprimerie de l'institut français de l'archéologie
orientale, 1956.
Lewy, H., Sobria Ebrietas, Untersuchungen zur Geschichte der antiken Mystik. Giessen:
Topelmann, 1929.
Liber, M., "La récitation du Schema et les Bénédictions." REJ, 54 (1909).
Lieberman, S., Greek in Jewish Palestine: Studies in the Life and Manners of Jewish
Palestine in the Ï1-1V Centuries C.E. New York: Philipp Feldheim, 1965.
Lieberman, S., Hellenism in Jewish Palestine: Studies in the Literary Transmission
Beliefs and Manners of Palestine in the I Century B.C.EAV Century C.E. New
York: Jewish Theological Seminary of America, 1962.
BIBLIOGRAPHY 281
Lieberman, S., "How Much Greek in Jewish Palestine?" Biblical And Other Studies.
Ed. A. Altmann. Cambridge: 1963, 123-141.
Lieberman, S., "The Martyrs of Caesarea." JQR, 36 (1946), 239-25 3.
Lieberman, S., "Palestine in the Third And Fourth Centuries." JQR, 36 (1945-46),
329-370; cont. in JQR, 37 (1946-47), 31-55.
Lietzmann, H., Der Men sehen söhn: Ein Beitrag zur neutestamentlichen Theologie.
Leipzig: Freiburg i. B., 1896.
Lindars, Barnabas, New Testament Apologetic: The Doctrinal Significance of the Old
Testament Quotations. Philadelphia: Westminster, 1961.
Ljungman, H., Guds Barmhärtighet och Dom: Eariseemas Lara om de tvà matten.
Lund: 1950. ( W i t h an English summary).
Lohfink, G., Die Himmelfahrt fesu: Untersuchungen zu den himmelfahrts- und
Erhöhungstexten bei Lukas. München: Kosel, 1971.
Loewy, M., La Gnose dans le Talmud. Budapest: 1885.
McEleney, N . J., "Orthodoxy in Judaism of the First Christian Century." JSJ, IV
(1973), 19-42.
Macgregor, G., "Principalities and Powers: the Cosmic Background of Paul's thought."
NTS, 1 (1954).
McKnight, Hdgar V., What is Form Criticism? Philadelphia: Fortress Press, 1971.
MacMullen, R., Enemies of the Roman Order: Treason, Unrest and Alienation in
the Empire. Cambridge: Harvard University Press, 1966.
McNamara, Martin, Targum and Testament: Aramaic Paraphrases of the Hebrew
Bible: A Light on the New Testament. Grand Rapids: William B. Herdmans,
1972.
Macrae, G. W., "Jewish Background of the Gnostic Sophia Myth." NT, 12 (1970),
86-10 L.
Macrae, G. W., "A N a g Hammadi Tractate on the Soul." Ex Orbe Religionum Stadia
Geo Widengren Oblata I. Leiden: Brill, 1972, 471-479-
Mack Burton L., Logos und Sophia: Untersuchungen zur Weisheitstheologie im
hellenistischen Judentum, Göttingen: Vandenhoeck & Ruprecht, 1973.
Mann, J., The Bible as Read and Preached in the Old Synagogue. V. 1, New York:
Ktav, 1971.
Maier, J. "Das Gefährdungsmotiv bei der Himmelreise in den jüdischen Apocalyptus
und 'gnosis.'" Kairos, 5 (1963), 18-40.
Mancini, I-, Archaeological Discoveries Relative to the J'udaeo-Christians. Tr. G.
Bushell. Jerusalem: 1970.
Mantel, H., Studies in the History of the Sanhédrin. Cambridge: Harvard Uni-
versity Press, 1965.
Marcus, R., "Judaism and Gnosticism." Judaism, 4 (1955), 360-64.
Margalioth, M., Encyclopedia of the Sages of the Talmud and the Geowm. (In Hebr.)
Tel Aviv: 1970.
Marmorstein, A., "The Background of the Haggadah." HUCA, 6 (1929), 141-204.
Marmorstein, A., "Deux renseignements d'Origine concernant les Juifs." REJ, LXX
(1920), 190-99.
Marmorstein, A., The Doctrine of Merits in Old Rabbinic Literature and the Old
Rabbinic Doctrine of God. New York: Ktav, 1920 (copyright, with new material,
1968).
Marmorstein, A., "The Lmperor Julianus in the Aggada of R. Aha." Melilah: A
Volume of Studies. lid. Fdward Robertson and Meir Wallenstein, 1 (1944),
93-120.
Marmorstein, A., "Les Épicuriens dans la littérature talrnudique." REJ, LIV (1907),
181-193.
Marmorstein, A., Essays in Anthropomorphism: Vol. 2 of The Old Rabbinic Doctrine
of God, New York: 1937.
282 BIBLIOGRAPHY
Marmorstein, A., "jews and Judaism in die earliest Christian Apologies." Expositor,
VIII, 17 (1919), 300-116.
Marmorstein, A., "Judaism and Christianity in the Middle of the Third Century."
HUCA, 10 (1935), 223-363.
Marmorstein, A., "Miscilien." ZNW, 25 (1925), 249-58.
Marmorstein, A., The Old Rabbinic Doctrine of God. London: Oxford University
Press, 1937.
Marmorstein, A., "Philo and the Names of God." JQR, 22 (1931-32), 295-306.
Marmorstein, A., "Les rabbins et les Évangiles." RE], XCII (1931), 31-54.
Marmorstein, A., Religions geschichtliche Studien: Die Bezeichnungen für Christen und
Gnostischen im Talmud und Midras. Schotschau (Ost Schlesien): Sebst Verlag des
Verfasser, 1910.
Marmorstein, A., Studies in Jewish Theology, l:d. J. Rabbinowitz and M. S. Lew.
Oxford: Oxford University Press, 1950.
Marmorstein, A,, "Zur Erforschung des Jelamdenu Problems." MGWJ, lA (1930),
266-284.
Marmorstein, A., "The Unity of God in Rabbinic Literature." HUCA, I, 467-499-
Marks, Luther H. Jr., "The Anti-Philosophical Polemic and Gnostic Soteriology in
the Treatise on the Resurrection (CG I, 3)." Numeu, 20 (1973), 20-37.
Martyn, J. Louis, History and Theology in the fourth Gospel. New York: Harper
Row, 1968.
Martyn, J. L., "Source Criticism and Religionsgeschichte in the Fourth Gospel" in
Jesus and Man's Hope. Pittsburgh Festival on the Gospels, 1970. Pittsburgh:
Pittsburgh Theological Seminary, 1970.
Marxsen, W., Mark the Evangelist: Studies on the Redaction History of the Gospel.
Tr. James Boyce, et al. Nashville: Abingdon Press, 1969.
Meeks, Wayne, " ' A m I a Jew?' Johannine Christianity and Judaism," Christianity,
Judaism and other Greco-Roman Cults. Studies for Morton Smith at Sixty» ed.
J. Neusner. I, 168-186.
Meeks, Wayne, "Moses as God and King." Religions in Antiquity, Festschrift for
E, R. Goodenough, Ed. J. Neusner, Leiden: Brill, 1968.
Meeks, Wayne, The Prophet King: Moses Traditions and the Johannine Christology.
Leiden: Brill, 1967,
Meeks, Wayne, "Samaritans, Magicians, and the Fourth Gospel."' (Response to J.
Purvis, "The Fourth Gospel and the Samaritans." 10/26/74.) paper SBL
meeting, October, 1974.
Michaelis, W., Zur Engelschristologie im Urchristentum.
Michl, J., "Engel" Reallexicon für antike und Christentum, lid. T. Klauser. Stuttgart:
1962, 66-67.
Mielziner, M., Introduction to the Talmud with a new Bibliography 1925-1967. Ed.
Alexander Guttman. New York: Bloch, 1968.
Milik, J. T., "4Q Visions de 'Amran et une citation d'Origène." RB, L X X I X (1972),
77-97.
Milik, J. T., "Milki-sedeq et Milki-resa dans les ancient écrits juifs et chrétiens."
JJS, 3 (1972), 95-144.
Milik, J. T., "Problèmes de la littérature hénochique à la lumière des fragments
araméens de Qumran." HTR, 64 (1971), 333-78.
Milik, J. T., "Turfan et Qumran: Livre des Géants Juifs et Manichéen." Tradition und
Glaube; Das frühe Christentum in seiner Umwelt: Festgabe für K. G. Kuhn.
Göttingen: 1971, 117-27.
Miner, D. F., "A Suggested Reading for 11Q Meich." JSJ, 2 (1971), 144-148.
Moore, G. F., "Christian Writers on Judaism." HTR, 14 (1921), 197-254.
Moore, G. F., Judaism in the First Centuries of the Christian Era; The Age of the
Tannaim, Cambridge: Harvard University Press, 1954.
BIBLIOGRAPHY 283
Moxnes, H., "God and his Angel in the Shepherd of Hermas." Studia Theologica, 28
(1974), 49-56.
Neher, A., "Le voyage mystique de quatre.'* Revue de l'histoire des religions, CXL
(1951), 59-82,
Neusner, Jacob, Aphrahat and Judaism. The Christian-Jewish Argument in the Fourth
Century Iran. Leiden: Brill, 1971.
Neusner, Jacob, "Babylonian Jewry and Shapur IPs Persecution of Christianity from
339 to 379 A.D." HUCA, XLÏÏÏ (1972), 77-102.
Neusner, J., "The Development of the Merkabah Tradition." JSJ, 2 (1971), 149-160.
Neusner, J., Eliezer b, Hyrcanus: The Tradition and the Man. Leiden, Brill, 1974-5.
Neusner, J., First Century Judaism in Crisis: Yohanan ben Zakkai and the Renaissance
of Tordh. Nashville: Abingdon, 1975.
Neusner, J., The Formation of the Babylonian Talmud. Leiden: Brill, 1971.
Neusner, J., A History of the Jews in Babylonia. 5 Volumes. Leiden: Brill, 1965-1970.
Neusner, J., "The (dea of Purity in Ancient Judaism." J AAR, 43 (March, 1975),
15-27.
Neusner, J., "Judaism In a Time of Crisis; Four Responses to the Destruction of the
Second Temple." Judaism, 21 (1972), 313-27.
Neusner, J., "Pharisaic Law in N.T. Times." USQR, 26 (1971), 331-40.
Neusner, J., From Politics to Piety: The Emergence of Pharisaic Judaism, Englewood
Cliffs: Prentice-Hall, 1973.
Neusner, J,, A Life of Rabban Yohanan ben Zakkai Ca 1-80 CE. Leiden: Brill, 1962.
Neusner, J., "Pre-70 C.H. Pharisaism: The Record of the Rabbis." CCARJ, 19 (1972),
53-70.
Neusner, J., "Rabbinic Judaism in Early Sasanian Babylonia." A History of the Jews
in Babylonia. Leiden: Brill, 1966, 147-51.
Neusner, J., "The Rabbinic Tradition about the Pharisees before 70 A.D.: The
Problem of Oral Transmission." JJS, 22 (1971), 1-18.
Neusner, ]., "Rabbis and Community in Third Century Babylonia." Religions in
Antiquity. FA. J. Neusner. (Festschrift for IL R. Goodenough), Leiden: Brill.
1968.
Neusner, J., "The Traditions Concerning Johanan ben Zakkai: Reconsiderations."
JJS, 24 (1973), 65-73.
Neusner, J., "Types and Forms in Ancient Jewish Literature: Some Comparisons, HR,
11 (1972), 354-90.
Nickelsburg, G. W. E. Jr., Resurrection, Immortality and Eternal Life in Intertesta-
mental Judaism. Cambridge: Harvard U. Press, 1972.
Newman, L. L, Jewish Influence on Christian Reform Movements. New York:
Columbia University Press, 1925.
Nock, A. D., Conversion: The Old and the Netv in Religion from Alexander the
Great to Augustine of Flippo. Oxford: Oxford University Press, 1969-
Nock, A, D., Early Gentile Christianity and its Hellenistic Background. New York:
Harper & Row, 1964 .
Nock, A. D., "Review of By Light, Light: The Mystic Gospel of Hellenistic Judaism."
Gnomon, 1937, 156-65.
Nock, A. D., "Paul and the Magus." The Beginnings of Christianity. Ed. F. J. Foakes
Jackson and K. Lake. Grand Rapids: Baker, V, 164-189-
L'Orange, H . P., Art Forms and Civic Life in the Late Roman Empire. Tr. Dr. and
Mrs. Knut Berg. Princeton: Princeton University Press, 1972.
L'Orange, H. P., Studies on the Iconography of Cosmic Kingship in the Ancient
World. Oslo: H. Aschehough & Co. (W. Nygaard), 1953.
Odeberg, H., The Aramaic Portions of Bereshit Rabba with Grammar of Galilean
Aramaic I. Lund: Gleerup, 1939-
BIBLIOGRAPHY 285
Williamson, R., Philo and the Epistle of the Hebrews. Leiden: Brill, 1970.
Wilson, R. McL,, " T h e Early History of the Exegesis of Gen. J.26," Stadia Patristica,
1:1 ( 1 9 5 7 ) , 420-437.
Wilson, R. McL., Gnosis and the New Testament. Philadelphia: Fortress Press, 1968.
Wilson, R. McL., The Gnostic Problem: A Study of the Relations between Hellenistic
Judaism and the Gnostic Heresy. London: Mowbray & Co., Î958.
Winston, D . , "The Iranian Component in the Bible, Apocrypha, and Qumran:
A Review of the Evidence." HR, 5 (1966), 183-216.
Wisse, F., "The Epistle of Jude in the History of Heresiology." Essays on the Nag
Hammadi texts in Honor of Alexander Böhlig. Ed. M. Krause. Leiden: Brill,
1972, 133-143.
Wisse, F., " T h e N a g Hammadi Library and the Heresiologists." Vigiliae Christiauae,
25 ( 1 9 7 ! ) , 205-223.
Wisse, F., "The Redeemer Figure in the Paraphrase of Shem." NT, 12 (1970),
Leiden: Brill, 130-110.
Wolfson, H . A., Philo: Foundations of Religious Philosophy in Judaism, Christianity,
and Islam. 2 Volumes. Cambridge: Harvard University Press, 1947.
Wolfson, H. A., "The Pre-existent Angel of the Magharians and Al-nahawandi,"
JQR, 51 (1960), 89-106.
van der W o u d e , A. S., "Melchisedek als himmlische Erlösergestalte in den neugefun-
denen eschatologischen Midrashim aus Qumran Höhle X L " OTS, l ! (1965).
van der "Woude, A. S-, Die messiauisebeu Vorstellungen der Gemeinde von Qumran.
Assen: Van Corcum & Co., 1957.
Yadin, Y., "A Note on MeSchizedek and Qumran." JE/, 15 ( 1 9 6 5 ) , 152-154.
Yamaut'hi, H. M., Pre-Christian Gnosticism: A Survey of the Proposed Evidence.
Grand Rapids: 1973.
York, A. D . , "The Dating of Targumic Literature." /S/, 5 (1974), 49-62.
Zachner, R. C , The Dawn and Twilight of Zoroastrianism. London: Weidenfeld and
NicoLson, 1961,
Zeit lin, Solomon, "Les principes des controverses halachiques entre les écoles de
Schammai et de Hiile!: ïitiidc sur la jurisprudence tannaitique." RE/, 93 (1932),
73-84.
Zeller, IL, Geschichte der deutscheu Philosophie seit Leibniz. München: 1873. 2nd
Edition, 1875.
Zelier, IL, The Stoics, Epicureans, and Sceptics. Tr. (). J. ReichiL N e w York: Russell &
Russell, Inc., 1962.
INDICES
I. RABBINIC WRITINGS
Alphabet of R. Akiba Sanh.
59 112 n. 8 38a 47 n. 2!
ARN 38b 45 n. 18, 68, 85 n. 5, 3
30 44 n. 17 Î21 n. 2, 322, 128 n. 10, Î 30
37 139 n. 9 39a 20 n. 45
39b 7
Babylonian Talmud 43a 24
A. Zar. 63b 93, 141 n. 15
7a 56 n. 38 64b 75 n. 5
B.M. 81a 44 n. 17, 232 n. 55
85b 61 n. 5 99b 85 n. 5
B.K. 104a 88 n. 10
70a 70 n. 31 Soferim
Ber. 1:7-1Ci 129 n. 13
6b 102 n. 9 Sotah
8 153 40a 100 n. 3
9:1 121 n. 2 Suk.
fib 107 n. 17, 153 45b Î12 n. 6, hit n, 15
28b 6 Yeb.
33b 99 16a 235 n. 3
59a-:?9b 41 n. 12 i6b 67 n. 24
63a 112 n. 6 Yom.
Git. 77a 61 n. 5
57b 232 n. 55
Hag.
Dt. R.
5b 86 n. 5
1:26 130
12b 62 n. 6, 139 n. 9
14a 47 n. 2Î, 67 n, 24 2:13 109 n. 1, 121 n. 2, 126, 127 n.
9, 128 n. 10, 129, 1 37 n. 6
14b 9, 191
2:32 138
15a 22, 60
40a 75 2:33 11, 139
Hull in 2:34 138 .
60a 148
87a 117 n. 18 I:cc. R.
7
Ker. ' 12 142
7b 92, 92 n. 18 9 26
— •
169 n. 23
Makk. 4 1 140
24a 44 n. 17 78 62 n. 6
Meg. Ex. R.
9a 129 n. 13 5:5 129 n. 13
25a 99 12:40 129 n. 13
Ned. 28:3 87 n. 7
23a 86 n. 5 29:1 121 n. 2, 111 n. 8, 128 n. 1Ü
Pes. 29:2 109 n. 1, 121 n. 2, 127 n. 8,
22b 75 137 n. 6
68a 232 n. 55 32:1 141 n. 15
290 INDICES
32:9 71 Shcbi.
42 112 n . ö , 141 n. 15 1:6 76 n. 6
Suk.
Gen. R. 4:1 76 n. 6
1 79 4:5 41 n. 11
1:1 188 n, 17 Taan.
1:13 121 n. 2, 126, 127 n. 9, 12828 2 (65d) 112 n. 5, t-11 n. 15, 2
n. 10 n. 87
1:14 74 Yeb.
3:8 137, 137 n. 5 3a 235 n .3
8:9 121 n. 2, 126, 127 n. 9, 130
8:9 81 n. 14, 86 n. 5 Lam. R.
8:10 112 n. 8 2:4 48 n. 23
8:11 129 n. 13 Lev. R.
9 14 n. 17 13 1r
10:9 129 u. 13 13:5 129 n. 13
12:1 142 29:1 l 139 n. 9
19:1 85 n, 5
21:5 113 a. 10, 131 n. 19 Mishnah
26:6 45 n. 18 Aboth
27 169 n. 23 2:14 85 n. 5
38:10 129 n. 13 Ber.
39:10 130 1:1 152 n. 4
48:17 129 n. 13 5:3 54, 98
51:2 131 n. 17 8 153
98:5 129 n. 13 9:1 127 n. 9
9:3 54
Jerusalem Talmud 9:5 1, 53, 105
A. Zar, Kelim
3 (42d) 91 n. 17, 144 28:2 92 n. 18
Ber. Ker.
1:5 100 n. 3 1:2 91 n. 17
8 153 Ket.
9, 4:2 75 9:5 8
9c 55 n. 33 Meg.
12b 121 n. 2, 126, 127 n. 9 4:9 54, 98
12d 132 Ned.
I 2d-13a 125 10:3 8
Hag. Sanh.
73 62 n. 9 4:5 113
Ket 4:5 109
8 76 n. 6 7:5 91 n. 17
Me^. 10:1 85 n. 5, 8S
4:10 99 Shab.
71d 129 n. 13 1:1 96 n. 28
Peah M. Ps.
1:1 76 n. 6 1:5 85 n. 4
San h. 21:5 48 n. 22
10:5 7 22 56
25b 92 n. 18 24a 137 n. 5
25d 95 46 88 n. 11
Shab. 50:1 121 n. 2, 127 n. 9
1:1 76 n. 6, 96 n. 28 51:8 146
RABBINIC WRITINGS 291
17:8 193
11:1-1 188 n. 16 1QS
Ben Sira 2 1U5 n. 15
24 185
3:17 21
44:16 188 T - S f l I ^ > 'ï
2:20 19.')
Bundahisn 1 • . * c
2-1 195
31 88 n. 10
•iQS
1:23 195
CCJ-L, UQber
BG 4-5 193 n, 28
44:9-17 252 n. 20 14 193 n. 28
If, 1 UQMelch S>4 n. 2 3
86:28-87:3 252 n. 20 10a 194
94:20-28 252 n. 20 13:9f 192 a. 27
94:34-95:7 252 n. 20 l l Q t g Job
1/18:27-33 252 n. 20 26:3 206 n. 67
151:3-28 252 n. 20 Didachc
152:10 251 IX 101 11. 7
153:25-29 251 X 10 Î n. 7
155:17-37 252 n. 20 Diogenes Laertes
II, 2 Proem. 8 19
103:6-20 252 n, 20
II, 3 Knoch, Gr.
1 1:18-21, 13:5-13 252 n. 20 M:15 192 n. 26
II, 4 20:8 187 n. 9
58:23-59:4 252 n. 20 linoch, I (Ethiopie)
See p. 249f. for complete listing of all 1:1 21 n. 50
references to C.G.L. 9:1 187 n. 9
Cave of Treasure 14 191, 192
2:13-3:2 113 n. 10 20 187 n. 9, 187 n. Î9
KXTRA-RABBINIC WRITINGS
Julian V.G.
Christ. 65
55 232 n. 57 112a 194 n. 33
120 232 n. 57 PGM
Justin III
Apology 146£ 189 n. 20
1:26 198 n. 47, 236 IV
1:31 221 n. 10 1203 187 n. 9
Dialogue VII
29 221 n. 9 257 187 n. 9
56 119 n. 22, 222, 223 XIII
58 222 744 187 n. 9
6ü 222 929 187 n. 9
61 222, 223 n. 18 973 187 n. 9
62 223 n. 19 Phüastr.
63-65 223 n. 20 Haer.
69:7 24 n. 60 52 194 n. 33
75 221 n. 9, 224 Philo
76 224 n. 22 Agr.
108 22! n. 10 51 171 n. 31, 173 n. 36, 188 n.
120 221 n. 8 14, 189 n. 19
Cher.
Lactantius 9 L69 n. 24, 189 n. 19, 174 n. 45
IV, 29, 1 232 n. 56 27-28 174 n. 45
Life of Adarn 35 169 n. 24
25:20 188 n. 13 125 173 n. 34, 177 n. 51
Conf.
Novatiaa 28 169 n. 24, 189 n. 19
Trin. 41 173 n. 37, 189 n. 19
30 230 n. 47 62-63 189 n. 19
Numenius 92 166 n. 17
fr. 95 168 n. 21
13 246 n, 8 134-149 177 n. 52
15 246 n. 4, 246 n. 6 146 114 n. 14, 167 n. 18, 173 n.
16-17 246 n. 5 35, n. 36, 187 n. 9, 189 n, 19
Det.
Or igen 32 81 n. 15, 110 n. 2, 173 n. 41,
Celsum 23<i n. 5
II, 24 231 n. 53 68 81 n. 15, 110 n. 2, 173 n. 4i,
IV, 10 235 n. 7 235 n. 5
IV, 52 246 n. 4 78 81 n. 15, 110 n. 2, 173 n. 41,
V, 39 231 n. 50 235 n. 5
VE, 31 198 n. 46 83 173 n. 37, 189 n. 19
VI, 6t 231 n. 50 103 110 n. 2, 173 n. 41, 235 n. 5
VII, 57 231 n. 50 Fug.
Heraclides 18 174 n. 45
2, 3 231 64 82 n. 7, 110 n. 2, 173 n. 41,
Joh. 235 n. 5
2:2 231 n. 50 68 177 n. 52
2:31 199 72 173 n. 37, 189 n. 19
10:37 231 n. 50 75 162 n. 8
Orat. 77 162 n. 8
XV, 1 231 n. 50 95 174 n. 45
EXTRA-RABBINIC WRITINGS 295
N E W TESTAMENT
Acts 8:42f 217
7:38 189 8:44 81, 216, 235
7:53 189 8:58-59 216
8:10 198 n. 47 9:22 217
10 :»16
Coi. 10:33 216
1:13-18 209 n. 73 12:37f 214
1:16 211 12:42 51 n. 28, 217
Cor., I 14:28 215
1:5 95 n. 27 17:3 215
U):l4f 95 n. 26 20:28 215 n. 90
liph. Lk.
L:20f 212 4:18 194
6:12 211 6:43 239
7:27 186 n. 7
Gai. 16:13 239
3:13f 64 17:34 88 n. 10
3:19 189
3:19-20 211 Mk.
1:2 70, 186 n. 7
Heb. l:23f 97 n. 28
1 209 n. 73 2:7 70
1:1 213 2:10 209
1:4-2:10 213 2:28 209
1:18 215 n. 91 2:32f 206 n. 68
2;lf 189, 213 5:7f 97 n. 28
2:5 189, 213 7:32f 97 n. 28
7:3 208 n. 73 8:56f 206 n. 68
9:23f 97 n. 28
Jn- 10:18 104 n. 10, 215
1 182 n. 1, 225 13:26 206 n. 68, 209
1:1 215 n, 91 14:62 95, 206 n. 68, 209
1:1-18 209 n. 73 Mt.
1:18 215 a. 90, 232 6:24 239
3:13 71 n. 32 7:18 239
5:18 216 11:10 70, 186 n. 7
5:21 216 13:43 186 n. 7, 188
6:46 213 22:30 186 n. 7, 188
SCRIPTURAL REFERENCES
96, 119, 121, 129, 133, 140, 152 n. 3, "heteros theos," "deus secundus," "two
153, 153 n. 7, 198, 229, 264 gods," etc.
christology, x, xii, 24, 210, 220, 262, 266 Dey, L., 171-2 n. 32
christos, 209 n. 73 Didache, 101, 153 n. 6
church fathers, xii, 14, 199, 220-234, 234- dikaios theos, 236
243, 244, 247, 255, 257, 263 Diogenes Laertes, 19
circumcision, 225 n. 24 ditheism, 7, 42, 77, 106, 231
Clemen, C , 19 n. 41 dltheous, 231
Clement, 256 dittography, 101
Collins, J., 49 n. 25, 201 divine providence, 86
Colpe, C , 15 n. 27, 202 n. 57, 203 n. 62 divine warrior, 184, 261 see also "son of
conclusions, 260f man," "God," "holy war"
consort, 141 Dix, G., 187 n, 9
counselor, 192 see also "angels," "arch- DMWT, 184, 185
angel," etc. Dodd, C, 245
creation, 263 Dodds, E., 87 n. 8, 1.65 n. 16
crisis of faith, 264 Donahue, P., 225 n. 24
Cross, F., 184 n. 4, 201 n. 55 Doresse, 248 n. 15
Cuthians, 93 see also "Samaritans" doxa, 185
Cynicism, 2 3 dualism, 11, 13, 14, 17, 20, 25, 28, 86,
Cyrus, 19 87, 93, 94, 96, 102, 106, 150, 151, 159,
180, 192, 217, 234-243, 242, 243, 244-
Dahi, N. A., ix, xii, 16, 24 n. 58, 39 n. 256, 267 see also "ditheism," "two
6, 44 n, 16, 46 n. 19, 48 n. 23, 73 n. powers in heaven," "two gods"
37, 81, 81 n. 15, 82 n, 20, 161 n. 4, D W B R , 153
187 n. 8, 207 n. 71, 208 n. 72, 211 n. dynameis, 8, 25 1
78, 217 n. 94, 235 n. 4, 252 n. 20, 255 dynamts, 8, 66, 174, 211, 223, 237
n, 28 agathotetos, 46 n. 20
c
Danby, 109 n. 1 eleos) 174
Daniel, 43, 144, 185, 266 koUtsterios, 46 n. 20
Danielou, J., 177 n. 52, 200 n. 53 po/et/kê, 174
David, 101, 194, 222
Davies, W., 209 n. 74, 211 n. 79 earth, 74 n. 2
DBRH T W R H KLSWN BNY 3 DM, 75 Eden, 248
n. 5 eikon, 92 n. 18, 184, 185
Dead Sea Scrolls, 20, 96, 192f see also eklektoi, 8
Qumran El, 132, 194, 228
Dekor, M., 193 n. 29, 194 n. 31 Elbogen, I., 5, 6, n. 5, 99, 152 n. 2, 153
demiurge, 14, 25, 81 n. 14, 134, 181, 197, n. 6
228, 242, 244-256, 265 see also "gnos- Eleazar (Rabbi), 131, 138, 144
ticism," etc. "God" "Elohim" Eleazar b. Azariah (Rabbi), 92 n .18
"YHWH" Eleazar b. Pedath (Rabbi), 144
arrogant claim of the, 244-256, 262, Eleazar Nadwadaya (Rabbi), 66
265 Eliezer (Rabbi), 87, 90, 132
Elohim as demiurge, 248 Elijah, 70, 102, 103, 180, 188
Derdekeas, 254 Elisha b. Abuya (Rabbi), 9, 60, 62 see
des Places, E., 246 n. 3 also "Aher"
dens secundus, 243 see also "alterius Elohim, 38, 39, 44, 45, 129, 132, 136,
deus," "two gods/' "heteros theos," 136 n. 4, 143 n. 16, 149, 170 n. 27,
"deuteros theos" etc. 174, 174 n. 46, 175, 194, 194 n, 32,
deutet a chora, 257 228, 248, 260, 263 see also "God,"
deuteros theos, 163, 165 n. 16, 231, 237, "demiurge," " Y H W H "
237 n, 13, 261 see also "alter'ms deus," Eltester, F., 113 n. 9, 184 n. 5
SUBJECTS 305
Enoch, 24, 65, 82, 180, 188, 191, 192, Gabriel (Rabbi), 131
201, 266 Gager, J., xiii, 21 n. 50, 26 n. 63, 26 n.
Enoch 11, 188 64, 232 n. 58
Iinoch III, 65, 73 n. 37, 188 Gaila, L,, xiii
Ephesis, 221 Gamaliel (Rabbi), 6, 44 n. 17, 116, 117,
Epicureanism, 23, 85, 86 n. 5, 88, 91 143 n. 16, 152
Epiphanus, 256 Gammie, ]., 48 n. 49, 192 n. 27
Epstein, J. N., 75 n. 5 Garden of Eden, 22
Epstein, M-, 90 Gaster, T., 20
Essene, 18, 20, 73, 105, 305 n. 14 see also Gathas, 18
"Dead Sea Scrolls" GBWR, 67 n. 24
Etz Yosef, 136 n. 3 GBWRH, 66, 195 n. 33
Eucharist, 101 GBWRWTK, 195
Eucharistoumen, 101 see also "benedic- Gehianom, 22
tion" Geiger, I., 129 n. 13
euphemism, 106 Geniza, 6
Evans, E., 238f gentile, 5, 12, 41, 54, 55, 87 see also
Eve, 2 38 "Christianity gentile"
Even to a bird's nest do Your mercies Gerhardsson, B., 25 n. 62
extend, 104-105 Gerizim, Mt, 94 n. 22 see also "Samari-
excommunication, 6, 90, 91, 97 n. 28 tans"
exegesis, xi, 36, 98 Gershevitch, I., 18 n. 39
Exodus, 50 gezerab shavah, 136
exousia, 7, 8, 174, 211 Ginzberg, L., 4i n. 12, 63 n. 12, 88, 93
Ezekiel, 200 n. 19, 94 n. 22, 139 n, 9, 187 n. 9, 201
n. 54, 221 n. 7.
Face of God, 249 n. 17 Glory, 192, 223
Fail, the, 113 n. 10 gnosis, 3, 15, 17, 248
Father, 228, 249 gnostic, 189, 195
Festugière, 164 n. 15, 246 n. 9 Gnostic Book of Baruch, 104 n. 11, 248
Finkelstein, L.( 85 n. 3, 107 n. 19 gnosticism, ix, xi, xii, 3, 4, 10, 12, 14,
Fischel, H., 23 n. 57, 62 n. 6, 86 n. 5, 15, 17, 18, 25, 29, 56, 59, 82, 95, 106,
176 n. 49 134, 144, 150, 155, 186, 218, 226, 227
Fitzmyer, J., 193 n. 29, 206 n. 67, 207 n. n. 32, 243, 244-256
70, 209 n. 73 extreme, 249f, 262, 265
Flavia Neapolis, 221 see also "Shechem" Jewish, 10, 60f
Flood, the, 113 gnostics, xi, 3, 4, 7, 9, 12, 15, 46, 57, 70
Frorer, 208 n. 73 n. 31, 78, 82, 89, 93, 111, 115, 121,
Foerster, W., 7, 8, 253 n. 22 129, 133, 228, 243, 244-256, 265
Forkman, G., 6 n. 3 God, 7, 9, 10, 11, 13, 14, 18, 20, 21, 33,
Fossum, J., xiii, 94 n. 20, 110 n. 2, 113 35, 42, 43, 46, 47, 51, 57, 61, 69, 71,
n. 10, 131 n. 18, 184 n. 5, 189 n. 21, 72, 80, 83, 98, 104, 105, 113, 126, 129,
201 n. 54 136, 137, 138, 159, 160, 162, 163, 164,
Francis, F., 211 n. 79 172, 173, 182, 188, 191, 210, 215, 221
Frankel, 129 n. 13, 130 n. 13 n. 6, 223, 225, 228, 248, 260, 261, 264
Friediänder, M., 15, 71, 82 n. 20, 167 n. see also "YHWH," "Eiohim," "de-
20, 221 n. 7 miurge"
Fuhrmann, Lorraine, xîii angel of, 8, 50, 51, 60f, 172, 257
fuller, 118, 119 creator, 108
Father, 191
Gabriel, 24, 49 n. 25, 51 n. 29, 137, 138, Lord, 191, 192 see also YHWH
187, 187 n, 9, 193 n. 28, 200, 201 n. name of, 24, 36, 38, 44, 45 n. 18, 52,
54 see also "angels," "archangel" 64, 65 n. 20, 77, 98, 112, 131, 132,
y 06 INDICES
Melchisedek, 24, 72, 82, 94. 167, 167 n. monarchianism, 229f, 265
20, 171, 192, 193, 194, 194 n. 32, 194 monotheism, 59, 115, 133, 161, 213, 261,
n. 33, 195, 195 n. 33, 208 n, 75, 230, 264
254 n. 26. Montgomery, 94 n. 20, 202 n. 56, 203
Memorial Foundation for Jewish Culture, n, 62
The, xiii Moore, G., 13, 14, 105 n. 14, 182 n. 1
Memra, 23, 182-3, 188 see also "shekhina" tnorphë, 185
mercy and justice, 244f Moses, 10, 42, 64, 68, 71, 87 n. 7, 144,
gnostic view, 257f 145, 163, 169, 171 n. 31, 174, 178,
Marcionite view, 234-243 180, 188, 192, 193 n. 28, 198, 214,
Philonic view, 42f, 43, 173-18 L, 262 224
rabbinic view, 38-39, 42f, 44-48, 48-49, Mowinckel, S., 48 n. 23, 203 n. 60
52-54, 85-89, 98-108, 136, 150, ISO, Moxnes, H., 220 n. 6
262 M Q W M , 131, 162
Tertullian's view, 237-243 MR^WT K B W D , 195
Merits of the Fathers, the, 88 MSKN HN C R, 67 n. 24
Merkabah, ix, 16, 17, 24, 40, 60f, 64, 66, Mustain, Haine, xiii
67, 69, 72, 73, 80, 145, 188, 190 n. 24, M W D H , 53
191, 192, 196, 200, 251, 265 M W D H , M W D H , 101
Mesharsheya (Rabbi), 22 M W D Y M , MWDYM, 101, 152
messenger, 64, 69 n. 31 see also "angels" M.WDYM DRBNN, 100
messiah, 23, 47, 48 n. 23, 49 n. 25, 95, MYN, 5 see also "minim"
118, 190, 190 n. 22, 198, 203, 205- mysticism, ix, 17, 64, 65, 67, 73, 80, 182,
219, 222, 230, 238 sec also "christos" 187f, 190 n. 23, 244, 249 n. 17 see
king, 48 n. 22 also "merkabah"
Messina, 1 5
Metatron, 10, 24, 60f, 61, 62, 63, 64, 65,
6(\ 61 n. 24, 68, 71, 72, 112, 114 n. 12, N C R, 65, 67 n. 24, 80, 80 n, 12
137, 149, 197, 201 Naasene Preaching, 247
M G D P J 9 2 , 92 n. 18 Nag Hammadi, 15, 78, 105, 244-256
MGLH PNYM BTWRH, 90-91 Nahman (Rabbi), 68
M H SYHW, 118 Nahurn (Rabbi), 145
Michael, 24, 40 n. 10, 49 n. 25, 66, 61 Nahum of Gimzo, 74, 75
n. 24, 94, 137, 138, 144, 185, 187, 187 Nathan (Rabbi), 34, 57, 58, 71, 115, 150,
n. 9, 187 n. 10, 189 n. 20, 192, 193 n. 256, 260, 263
28, 194, 200, 201 n. 54, 203, 220 nations of the world, 55, 246
Michaelis, W , 186 n. 8, 220 n. 2 N D W Y , 6, 97 n. 2S see also "HRM,"
midrash, x, 24, 36, 74, 98 "excommunication' '
Mielziner, 90 n, 13 Neher, A., 63 n. 12
MJgnard, J., 6 n. 3 neo-Pythagoreanism, 2 3
Milik, ]., 194 n. 30, 204, 204 n. 65 Neusner, J., ix, xiii, 16 n. 35, 25, 26
Miller, P., 184 n. 4, 201 n. 55 n. 64, 43 n. 15, 63 n. 12, 64 n. 14,
minim, 5, 6, 11, 55, 56, 58, 58 n. 40, 130 n. 14, 232 n. 55
68, 73, 97 n. 28, 111, 114, 116, 117, New Testament, ix, xi, xii, 26, 28, 70, 94,
118, 122, 124, 132, 221 n. 7 198, 228f, 257, 266
Mishnah, 6 research methodology, 25
Mithras Liturgy, 63 n. 11, 253 Nickelsburg, G., 207 n. 71
mixis, 176 n. 49 Nöldeke, 69 n. 31
MLK, 186 n. 7 no power in heaven, 154
modalism, 165 n. 16, 194 n. 33, 229-233, Noetus, 229
265 nous, 165, 245
Modirn, 99, 100, 102 see also " M W D H , " Novation, 230
"MWDYM," etc. Numenius, 246
310 INDICES
Sodom, 130, 162, 222, 239, 253 iheos, 170 n. 27, 174 n. 46, 175, 178, 178
Sodom and Gomorrah, 13 n. 53, 223, 229
Solomon, I I , 140 Therapeutae, 103, 105
son of a cloud, 48 n. 22 thronoi, 8, 211
Son of God, 17, 2Ü5-2J9, 220, 245, 249, Tiberias, 13
257 Tiberius, 221 n, 7
son of heresy, 55 Tobit, 190, 191, 192, 210
son of man, xi, 24, 35, 36, 47, 49, 49 topos, 250
n, 25, 65, 71, 123, 124, 184, 190, 190 Torah, 58, 75 n. 5, 145, 186, 211, 236,
n. 23, 191, 192, 197, 201-205, 205-219, 239, 242, 263
240, 247 see also "messiah" etc. iosajot, 129 n. 13
sophia, 79, 185, 186, 223, 256 n. 29, 257 Towner, W., 25 n. 62, 130 n. 13
Sophia Jesu Christi, 251 Tractatus Tripartitus, 79
sorcery, 97 n. 28 Traenkle, H., 240 n. 24
Souriel, 189 n. 20 transfiguration, 209
Sowers, 161 n. 5 Travers, M., 22 n. 53
Spiegel, S., 207 n. 71 trinitarianism, 7
spirit, 188 trinity, 133
Spirit of His Truth, 193 Trypho, 13, 221, 222
SR H C WLM, see "Lord of the World" two authorities, 8 see also "two powers
Stade, B., 8 n. 8 in heaven"
Standing God, the, 246 two creators, 113 n. 10, 116, 137, 183 see-
Stauffer, 85 n. 2 also "two powers in heaven"
Stephen, 95 two Gods, 44, 74 n. 3, 76, 77, 96, 113
stoicism, 21, 23, 165, 245 n. 10, 134, 149, 154, 159, 171, 212f,
Strack-Biilerbeck, 182 n. 1, 187 n. 9 229, 230, 231, 232, 233
Strugneli, J., 193 n. 28 two powers in heaven, ix, xi, 3, 7, 8, 10-
STY RSWYWT BSMYM see also "two 14, 17, 18, 20, 23, 25, 29, 33, 36, 53,
powers in heaven" 56, 58, 59, 61, 63, 67, 71, 73, 77, 83,
SWR 142 86, 87, 89, 93, 94, 96, 98, 100, 103,
SWTP, 112, 137 n. 6, Mo, 141, 183 n. 2 104, 106, i l l , J 14, 115, 118, 119, 126,
synergasömenos 183 n. 2 131, 133, 140, 141, 143, 144, 145, 151,
SYYR, 142 152, 154, 159, 182, 186, 189, 196, 198,
sy/.ygies, 256 201, 205, 209, 211, 215, 224, 226, 227,
228, 233, 239, 241, 2Ö0-267
Tanhum, the Old (Rabbi), 66 complementary, x, 50, 33f, 106, U 4 ,
Tardieu, 1.89 n. 21 115, 180
targum, 51, 79, 21.4 binitarian, 7, 17, 4, 94, 150, 230,
TBNYT, 185 244f, 263
Ten Commandments, The, 39, 57, 144, ditheistic, 7, 137 n. 6, 230, 231, 244f,
152 n. 3, 153 n. 7, 198 263
Tendenz, 26 opposing, x, 50, 57, 59, 71, 150, 180,
Terah, 88 234-243, 244-256
Tertullian, 229-31, 236, 237-243, 265 typos, 185
tetragrammaton, 68, 87, 119, 174 n. 44,
175, 180, 197, 207 see also Y H W H van Unnik, W., 16 n. 30, 72 n. 26
The Ancient of Days, 35 Untitled Work, the, 251, 252 n. 20
the Book of Baruch, 103 Urbach, E., 22 n. 54, 39 n. 8, 62 n. 9, 63,
Theodor, 113 n. 10 64 n. 14, 65 n. 19, 68 n. 26, 69, 73
Theodotus, 230 n. 37, 110 n. 2, 113 n. 9
the Asian, 194 n. 33 Uriel, 187, 199
Theophilus, 79, 225-227, 24L, 256, 263,
266 Valentinianism, 95 n. 27, 245, 251
SUBJECTS 313